Selected quad for the lemma: kingdom_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
kingdom_n earth_n glory_n great_a 2,131 5 2.9800 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27623 A Scripture-line of time drawin in brief from the lapsed creation to the restitution of all things ... / by T. Beverley. Beverley, Thomas. 1684 (1684) Wing B2173; ESTC R25251 215,061 296

There are 36 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

now_o the_o church_n be_v indeed_o out_o of_o view_n by_o the_o apostasy_n introduce_v by_o the_o gentile_n the_o beast_n people_n under_o the_o other_o beast_n so_o that_o the_o false_a church_n hide_v the_o true_a as_o in_o a_o wilderness_n the_o gentile_n crowd_v the_o true_a worshipper_n into_o a_o close_v temple_n the_o daily_o be_v take_v away_o the_o witness_n be_v in_o sackcloth_n where_o then_o can_v the_o true_a church_n be_v see_v all_o be_v scatter_v no_o body_n of_o a_o church_n appear_v but_o the_o antichristian_a to_o this_o state_n thing_n grow_v more_o and_o more_o under_o the_o regnancy_n of_o the_o beast_n till_o the_o woman_n be_v flee_v from_o the_o serpent_n himself_o all_o this_o be_v then_o to_o be_v account_v to_o the_o beast_n serve_v the_o true_a church_n by_o god_n overrule_a hand_n so_o far_o as_o that_o it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o dragon_n reach_n who_o be_v deceive_v think_v to_o strike_v the_o true_a but_o the_o false_a lie_v bleed_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n satan_n however_o in_o his_o serpentine_a and_o draconick_a nature_n jealous_a of_o any_o thing_n of_o christ_n even_o in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n first_o persecute_v the_o empire_n by_o the_o barbarian_n where_o he_o know_v the_o woman_n very_o late_o be_v by_o she_o bring_v forth_o the_o manly_a birth_n he_o strike_v at_o it_o by_o way_n of_o distinction_n in_o his_o own_o aim_n but_o find_v he_o can_v not_o reach_v it_o by_o the_o rude_a stroke_n of_o the_o barbarian_n but_o the_o eagle_n wing_n have_v convey_v it_o away_o and_o find_v that_o those_o barbarous_a nation_n settle_v by_o degree_n into_o the_o antichristian_a christianity_n and_o so_o help_v it_o forward_o into_o the_o wilderness_n he_o then_o resolve_v to_o be_v sure_a of_o it_o attempt_v to_o swallow_v it_o by_o the_o mahometan_a flood_n but_o this_o neither_o distinguish_v it_o nor_o succeed_v because_o the_o bestian_a earth_n drink_v up_o the_o flood_n not_o only_o receive_v it_o upon_o itself_o but_o maintain_v the_o name_n doctrine_n profession_n and_o church_n state_n of_o christianity_n so_o far_o as_o be_v necessary_a absolute_o to_o antichristianisme_n and_o its_o kingdom_n so_o drink_v up_o the_o flood_n by_o set_v itself_o against_o the_o blasphemous_a monstrous_a mahometan_a imposture_n and_o with_o a_o deadly_a hate_n because_o mahometanism_n be_v no_o less_o against_o antichristianity_n than_o christianity_n so_o the_o serpent_n disappoint_v be_v wroth_a and_o as_o so_o necessitate_v determine_v now_o to_o sift_v for_o his_o end_n by_o draconism_n refine_v into_o beastianism_n heathenism_n guild_v with_o christianity_n but_o point_v and_o edge_a with_o antichristianisme_n which_o be_v a_o compound_n of_o the_o dragon_n and_o the_o beast_n and_o because_o this_o antichristian_a state_n allow_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o a_o christian_a church_n though_o but_o itself_o only_o he_o can_v make_v war_n only_o with_o the_o woman_n seed_n and_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o as_o we_o say_v with_o a_o vengeance_n he_o make_v war_n with_o the_o woman_n seed_n who_o keep_v the_o commandment_n god_n and_o hold_v as_o witness_n the_o martyry_a of_o jesus_n that_o be_v by_o the_o beast_n who_o history_n immediate_o follow_v cap._n 13._o and_o to_o who_o the_o dragon_n depute_v his_o power_n and_o seat_n even_o great_a authority_n which_o delegation_n the_o other_o beast_n that_o speak_v as_o a_o dragon_n viz._n the_o false_a prophecy_n receive_v and_o manage_v for_o he_o the_o grand_a beast_n until_o he_o come_v to_o his_o image_n and_o number_n and_o so_o the_o dragon_n and_o the_o beast_n continue_v together_o till_o the_o beast_n be_v take_v and_o cast_v into_o the_o lake_n and_o the_o dragon_n and_o all_o his_o draconism_n bind_v chain_v and_o seal_v up_o by_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n appear_v rev._n c._n 19_o c._n 20._o v._n 1._o and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a history_n of_o draconism_n as_o enter_v into_o bestianism_n by_o which_o it_o plain_o appear_v the_o scatter_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a people_n or_o the_o state_n of_o the_o woman_n in_o the_o wilderness_n be_v whole_o owe_v to_o the_o beast_n and_o his_o bestianism_n who_o be_v time_n time_n half_a time_n and_o that_o the_o dragon_n and_o his_o persecution_n be_v whole_o defeat_v by_o the_o bestian_a apostasy_n convey_v the_o church_n from_o the_o serpent_n till_o he_o wrought_v by_o the_o beast_n and_o make_v over_o his_o power_n to_o he_o in_o revenge_n upon_o the_o woman_n seed_n itself_o be_v still_o safe_a now_o how_o admirable_a be_v all_o this_o according_a to_o the_o symbol_n the_o beast_n still_o in_o all_o appearance_n and_o semblance_n secure_v christ_n on_o the_o throne_n while_o it_o supplant_v his_o true_a kingdom_n and_o power_n for_o how_o can_v antichrist_n kingdom_n stand_v if_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o title_n upon_o the_o throne_n but_o how_o can_v it_o stand_v if_o christ_n do_v indeed_o reign_n no_o it_o present_o fall_v then_o or_o rather_o vanish_v away_o again_o the_o wing_n of_o the_o apostatise_v empire_n while_o they_o convey_v the_o true_a church_n out_o of_o all_o ordinary_a visibility_n yet_o secure_v it_o in_o the_o name_n and_o notion_n of_o a_o church_n the_o beast_n earth_n thus_o help_v it_o for_o a_o christian_a church_n be_v his_o claim_n and_o title_n to_o his_o kingdom_n but_o it_o must_v be_v hide_v for_o a_o true_a christian_a church_n visible_a destroy_v his_o kingdom_n thus_o all_o thing_n even_o to_o astonishment_n at_o the_o divine_a prophetic_a wisdom_n have_v a_o harmony_n in_o truth_n great_a than_o that_o of_o the_o sphere_n in_o imagination_n mahometan_n and_o pagan_a infidel_n by_o subvert_v christianity_n necessary_o overthrow_v antichrist_n kingdom_n also_o it_o be_v in_o indispensable_a need_n of_o christianity_n so_o far_o as_o a_o pretence_n go_v but_o the_o brightness_n and_o native_a glory_n consume_v it_o while_o christianity_n under_o a_o false_a mask_n support_v it_o true_a christianity_n scorch_v it_o to_o nothing_o as_o will_v be_v see_v at_o the_o vial_n pour_v into_o the_o sun_n true_a christianity_n and_o the_o church_n therefore_o must_v be_v hide_v and_o in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o its_o seed_n persecute_v as_o if_o not_o of_o the_o church_n that_o false_a christianity_n and_o the_o false_a church_n may_v reign_v in_o its_o absence_n under_o its_o name_n and_o appearance_n thus_o while_o the_o dragon_n persecute_v in_o his_o aim_n and_o intention_n the_o christian_a church_n the_o apostasy_n pretend_v itself_o the_o universal_a church_n convey_v the_o true_a church_n into_o a_o wilderness_n and_o so_o befriend_v the_o notion_n of_o a_o church_n while_o it_o convey_v it_o out_o of_o sight_n the_o dragon_n by_o the_o beast_n make_v war_n with_o the_o seed_n and_o scatter_v they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v find_v in_o the_o body_n of_o a_o church_n not_o but_o that_o the_o church_n be_v true_o visible_a in_o the_o single_a witness_n however_o anathematise_v but_o it_o can_v not_o be_v reach_v in_o a_o body_n even_o by_o the_o serpent_n himself_o for_o it_o be_v not_o in_o a_o body_n and_o yet_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o church_n be_v dear_a to_o the_o antichristian_o for_o they_o and_o the_o beast_n usurp_v it_o at_o this_o time_n therefore_o according_a to_o this_o prophecy_n it_o can_v be_v no_o argument_n against_o the_o church_n where_o be_v it_o or_o it_o be_v not_o visible_a in_o a_o body_n for_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v visible_a in_o a_o body_n but_o in_o the_o suffer_a scatter_a seed_n so_o that_o it_o be_v hide_v from_o the_o very_a serpent_n and_o yet_o even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 1260_o day_n there_o be_v a_o mahometan_a draconism_n level_v at_o christ_n christianity_n and_o the_o true_a church_n but_o fall_v almost_o whole_o upon_o the_o false_a church_n and_o the_o antichristian_a king_n and_o his_o subject_n who_o be_v therefore_o always_o principal_o concern_v to_o drink_v up_o this_o flood_n and_o so_o help_v the_o true_a church_n by_o his_o earth_n there_o be_v nothing_o at_o the_o present_a i_o can_v think_v necessary_a to_o add_v to_o this_o explication_n of_o the_o apocalyptical_a dragon_n but_o that_o the_o whole_a vision_n rev._n 12._o to_o v._o 13._o be_v present_v as_o in_o heaven_n so_o that_o the_o assumption_n of_o the_o manly_a birth_n the_o joy_n upon_o the_o dragon_n be_v cast_v down_o upon_o the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o god_n be_v come_v etc._n etc._n be_v give_v as_o in_o heaven_n and_o be_v reserve_v also_o in_o heaven_n till_o the_o glorious_a appearance_n of_o christ_n and_o there_o be_v no_o more_o but_o such_o a_o imperfect_a cognisance_n of_o those_o great_a thing_n upon_o earth_n as_o be_v give_v by_o the_o christian_a short_a empire_n to_o be_v expect_v till_o that_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o beast_n reign_n which_o may_v
accompany_v with_o the_o mahometan_a force_n and_o yet_o even_o that_o remain_v a_o scourge_n upon_o it_o since_o the_o reformation_n until_o now_o and_o can_v cease_v to_o be_v so_o while_o antichristianism_n itself_o shall_v survive_v but_o if_o thing_n have_v thus_o go_v on_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n have_v long_a '_o ere_o now_o appear_v let_v we_o then_o consider_v the_o agreement_n of_o the_o symbol_n of_o prophecy_n with_o the_o stay_n of_o this_o glory_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o do_v not_o proceed_v to_o the_o utmost_a in_o the_o ruin_n of_o antichrist_n and_o the_o revelation_n of_o his_o supreme_a dominion_n the_o first_o estopple_n on_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o thunder_v the_o constant_a symbol_n of_o some_o break_n out_o of_o christ_n kingdom_n for_o they_o be_v such_o powerful_a voice_n of_o high_a and_o most_o excellent_a truth_n that_o if_o they_o have_v be_v write_v as_o john_n in_o zeal_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n be_v about_o speedy_o to_o write_v they_o and_o not_o seal_v they_o have_v rend_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v proclaim_v as_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n the_o clear_a shrill_a and_o exalt_a voice_n of_o divine_a truth_n be_v 24._o luc._n 17._o 24._o as_o the_o lightning_n that_o with_o the_o thunder_n shine_v from_o one_o end_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o that_o shine_v to_o the_o other_o end_n of_o heaven_n and_o bring_v forth_o the_o day_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n tremble_v at_o and_o be_v shiver_v by_o as_o by_o the_o stroke_n of_o thunder_n but_o write_v and_o seal_v be_v oppose_v in_o this_o prophecy_n as_o immediate_a come_n to_o pass_v and_o reserve_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v hereafter_o be_v oppose_v one_o to_o the_o other_o there_o be_v a_o recognition_n and_o renewal_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o christ_n concern_v time_n time_n half-time_n dan._n 12._o 9_o indeed_o the_o front_n and_o aspect_n of_o the_o oath_n there_o be_v turn_v another_o way_n for_o than_o it_o be_v direct_v upon_o these_o time_n as_o to_o come_v and_o the_o oath_n be_v they_o shall_v be_v here_o it_o point_n upon_o they_o as_o past_a and_o christ_n swear_v time_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o but_o till_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n and_o then_o all_o shall_v be_v finish_v speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o be_v such_o a_o mystery_n the_o world_n will_v not_o believe_v however_o tell_v they_o they_o be_v angry_a whenever_o christ_n take_v his_o power_n to_o he_o and_o reign_v and_o much_o more_o angry_a at_o 18._o rev._n 11._o 18._o any_o mention_n of_o it_o before_o hand_n at_o any_o unlock_v or_o read_v viz._n interpret_n prophecy_n concern_v it_o but_o christ_n swear_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o time_n or_o no_o calendar_n of_o any_o kingdom_n but_o his_o own_o at_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n it_o shall_v then_o immediate_o succeed_v and_o be_v proclaim_v till_o than_o time_n be_v allow_v for_o the_o thunder_n to_o remain_v seal_v then_o they_o shall_v be_v open_v and_o if_o the_o thunder_n have_v not_o be_v seal_v before_o the_o oath_n the_o oath_n have_v cut_v off_o that_o time_n also_o but_o because_o the_o half_a time_n can_v be_v less_o than_o itself_o the_o thunder_n remain_v seal_v neither_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o the_o half_a time_n so_o it_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o time_n but_o only_o a_o half_a time_n and_o a_o whole_a time_n can_v be_v no_o more_o 4._o the_o eat_v the_o book_n it_o be_v be_v sweet_a in_o the_o mouth_n and_o bitter_a in_o the_o belly_n and_o prophesy_v again_o signify_v altogether_o the_o retirement_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n anew_o into_o prophecy_n in_o place_n of_o present_a accomplishment_n and_o of_o that_o kingdom_n then_o appear_v for_o therefore_o be_v its_o sweet_a in_o the_o mouth_n because_o the_o discourse_n of_o that_o kingdom_n as_o in_o the_o voice_n of_o thunder_n be_v exceed_v sweet_a as_o import_v its_o present_a appearance_n but_o the_o discourse_n of_o it_o as_o matter_n of_o prophecy_n and_o the_o re-absconding_a it_o to_o that_o purpose_n into_o the_o belly_n be_v exceed_v bitter_a as_o signify_v its_o delay_n and_o secrecy_n for_o long_a time_n yet_o as_o belly_n import_v secret_o whereas_o therefore_o the_o book_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o half-season_n end_v be_v open_v as_o if_o then_o to_o be_v accomplish_v and_o the_o thing_n write_v in_o it_o to_o be_v finish_v it_o be_v remand_v into_o the_o belly_n of_o the_o prophet_n conclude_v its_o delay_n and_o this_o be_v bitter_a the_o book_n therefore_o be_v sweet_a in_o any_o presence_n bitter_a in_o any_o delay_n of_o the_o kingdom_n the_o kingdom_n be_v not_o to_o be_v yet_o while_o the_o half_a day_n last_v it_o must_v be_v when_o that_o end_n in_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n therefore_o it_o remain_v in_o prophecy_n and_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n continue_v to_o prophecy_n in_o sack_n cloth_n because_o of_o the_o delay_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o to_o prophesy_v again_o before_o many_o people_n and_o nation_n and_o tongue_n and_o king_n who_o this_o kingdom_n concern_v john_n be_v here_o the_o representative_a the_o prophetical_a scheme_n or_o symbol_n for_o this_o prophecy_n be_v unto_o and_o so_o before_o many_o who_o will_v not_o vouchsafe_v to_o hearken_v or_o attend_v to_o it_o yet_o it_o be_v unto_o they_o before_o they_o and_o will_v take_v hold_n of_o they_o but_o while_o the_o book_n be_v in_o prophecy_n in_o the_o belly_n it_o be_v bitter_a and_o the_o witness_n prophesy_v in_o sackcloth_n so_o john_n personate_v or_o proxy_n for_o they_o the_o seal_v then_o of_o the_o thunder_n as_o also_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o roar_n of_o the_o lion_n by_o implication_n retire_v the_o eat_v of_o the_o open_a book_n or_o return_v it_o into_o prophecy_n argue_v it_o must_v remain_v in_o prophecy_n as_o it_o have_v do_v the_o whole_a time_n of_o the_o trumpet_n after_o the_o seal_v open_v because_o of_o the_o 144000_o seal_v and_o that_o the_o kingdom_n do_v not_o appear_v when_o it_o have_v in_o the_o christian_a emperor_n make_v so_o loud_a a_o claim_n and_o now_o by_o the_o thunder_n utterance_n a_o so_o public_a challenge_n of_o its_o right_n yet_o it_o must_v return_v again_o into_o prophecy_n and_o be_v bitter_a in_o the_o belly_n all_o these_o be_v the_o clear_a and_o evident_a importance_n of_o these_o symbol_n in_o a_o due_a compare_n of_o the_o part_n of_o this_o prophecy_n between_o themselves_o and_o if_o we_o look_v not_o only_o into_o history_n but_o knowledge_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o yet_o appear_v in_o glory_n the_o bless_a effect_n of_o christian_a religion_n the_o great_a prophecy_n concern_v those_o effect_n that_o even_o swell_v the_o womb_n of_o prophecy_n have_v not_o yet_o be_v bring_v forth_o the_o antichristianism_n the_o bestianism_n the_o apostle_n paul_n the_o apostle_n 3._o pet._n epist_n 2._o c._n 2._o c._n 3._o peter_n the_o apostle_n john_n especial_o in_o his_o apocal._n describe_v have_v yet_o a_o too_o sad_a interest_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n mahometanism_n cover_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o habitable_a earth_n and_o till_o very_o late_o as_o in_o signification_n of_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n to_o be_v proclaim_v near_o at_o hand_n have_v be_v the_o scourge_n and_o terror_n of_o christianity_n but_o more_o particular_o as_o according_a to_o this_o prophecy_n of_o the_o antichristianity_n of_o east_n and_o west_n and_o hold_v a_o very_a considerable_a part_n of_o the_o profession_n of_o it_o under_o slavery_n pagaism_n we_o know_v possess_v except_o obstinate_o blind_v intersperse_v judanism_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n all_o which_o must_v remove_v at_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o state_n of_o christianity_n more_o reform_v to_o itself_o to_o speak_v in_o the_o language_n and_o symbol_n of_o this_o prophecy_n there_o be_v very_o great_a part_n of_o the_o reformation_n that_o be_v within_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o yet_o antichristian_a prince_n and_o so_o within_o the_o dition_z and_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n when_o ever_o it_o please_v god_n to_o give_v scope_n to_o that_o power_n they_o be_v all_o manner_n of_o way_n persecute_v and_o harrassed_a even_o as_o the_o succession_n or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n of_o thyatyra_n be_v to_o be_v and_o their_o last_o work_n and_o suffering_n thereby_o become_v more_o than_o their_o first_o etc._n rev._n 2._o 19_o etc._n etc._n and_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v perfect_o rise_v and_o out_o of_o sackcloth_n that_o they_o make_v a_o appearance_n of_o the_o witness_n again_o france_n hungary_n france_n slay_v as_o in_o neighbour_n country_n of_o
late_a other_o part_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n have_v not_o pursue_v the_o true_a principle_n of_o the_o reformation_n the_o regulation_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o doctrine_n worship_n conversation_n and_o discipline_n according_a to_o the_o pure_a and_o perfect_a rule_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o that_o word_n in_o many_o thing_n be_v regulate_v by_o antiquity_n not_o consider_v how_o early_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n be_v at_o work_n and_o where_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o account_n of_o the_o beast_n number_n ought_v to_o be_v place_v even_o at_o 25_o or_o 26_o from_o the_o resurrection_n etc._n revel_v 3._o v._n 1._o etc._n etc._n so_o that_o these_o as_o in_o the_o church_n of_o sardis_n affect_v too_o much_o outward_a pomp_n and_o grandieur_n be_v to_o strengthen_v the_o remainder_n which_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v that_o be_v to_o fill_v up_o the_o reformation_n to_o endeavour_v to_o open_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o thunder_n among_o themselves_o and_o to_o prophesy_v more_o vigorous_o before_o peoples_n nation_n tongue_n and_o king_n concern_v which_o thing_n the_o generality_n be_v so_o asleep_a that_o there_o be_v but_o a_o few_o name_n who_o have_v not_o defile_v their_o garment_n but_o will_v be_v in_o great_a danger_n of_o a_o shameful_a devestiture_n or_o degradation_n when_o christ_n appear_v revel_v 3._o 3._o compare_v with_o revel_n 16._o 15._o the_o church_n of_o philadelphia_n although_o in_o a_o general_a zeal_n to_o have_v a_o perfect_a square_n with_o pure_a evangelical_n truth_n be_v indeed_o etc._n v._o 7._o etc._n etc._n in_o be_v yet_o not_o come_v to_o make_v the_o apocalyptick_a line_n of_o time_n by_o its_o proper_a interval_n or_o space_n nor_o can_v do_v before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 1260_o day_n as_o it_o be_v draw_v upon_o these_o church_n to_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n which_o appear_v in_o philadeph_n and_o the_o right_n of_o a_o church_n their_o door_n of_o the_o profession_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o word_n be_v endeavour_v to_o be_v shut_v although_o christ_n as_o by_o immediate_a power_n have_v hitherto_o keep_v it_o open_a yet_o they_o of_o this_o church_n have_v but_o a_o little_a strength_n outward_a power_n or_o glory_n revel_v 3._o 7._o etc._n etc._n the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n be_v ready_a on_o all_o account_n and_o at_o all_o advantage_n to_o dissinagogue_n they_o and_o cast_v they_o out_o to_o control_v and_o browbeat_a they_o and_o that_o synagogue_n must_v be_v of_o the_o reform_a so_o the_o name_v they_o jew_n import_v as_o in_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n jew_n signify_v christian_n in_o profession_n but_o become_v gentile_n so_o here_o it_o signify_v reform_v but_o so_o far_o relapse_v as_o to_o be_v false_o so_o call_v who_o be_v at_o the_o same_o elevation_n of_o corruption_n the_o apostasy_n be_v at_o in_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n not_o long_o before_o the_o 1260_o dark_a day_n come_v in_o so_o that_o though_o they_o disallow_v the_o apostasy_n since_o that_o time_n yet_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o canonize_v it_o so_o far_o as_o to_o that_o time_n it_o have_v proceed_v and_o may_v if_o they_o have_v time_n find_v the_o same_o path_n to_o the_o same_o end_n yet_o still_o they_o escape_v the_o beast_n number_n 666._o now_o in_o regard_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n it_o be_v most_o evident_a the_o witness_n must_v be_v yet_o in_o sackcloth_n but_o they_o be_v if_o they_o be_v not_o want_v to_o their_o own_o privilege_n and_o office_n like_o moses_n and_o aaron_n commission_v to_o smite_v with_o plague_n as_o often_o at_o they_o will_v that_o be_v to_o declare_v the_o foulness_n of_o the_o apostasy_n to_o 6._o revel_v 11._o 6._o remonstrate_v the_o bestianism_n and_o antichristianism_n of_o it_o and_o to_o foretell_v the_o seven_o trumpet_n and_o its_o voice_n and_o vial_n in_o ruin_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o great_a judgement_n to_o be_v execute_v on_o his_o city_n church_n himself_o and_o his_o false_a prophet_n and_o all_o the_o impenitent_n of_o his_o kingdom_n from_o first_o to_o last_o and_o also_o to_o declare_v the_o redemption_n of_o the_o whole_a israel_n of_o god_n from_o this_o spiritual_a egypt_n and_o its_o slavery_n the_o open_v the_o temple_n that_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o testament_n the_o tabernacle_n of_o testimony_n may_v be_v see_v in_o heaven_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n appear_v in_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n and_o this_o they_o may_v do_v as_o often_o as_o they_o will_v that_o be_v there_o be_v abundant_a evidence_n of_o prophetic_a truth_n to_o do_v it_o by_o there_o be_v abundant_a promise_n of_o acceptance_n favour_n and_o support_v in_o the_o do_n of_o it_o so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o remissness_n of_o will_n that_o be_v of_o zeal_n not_o to_o do_v it_o for_o blessed_n be_v he_o that_o hear_v and_o they_o that_o read_v the_o word_n of_o this_o prophecy_n especial_o when_o the_o time_n be_v so_o near_o at_o hand_n the_o last_o part_n of_o this_o time_n be_v the_o most_o glorious_a because_o etc._n revel_v 11._o 11._o etc._n etc._n it_o issue_v out_o into_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n and_o then_o those_o great_a thing_n will_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o preparation_n of_o which_o all_o that_o be_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o time_n be_v but_o a_o shade_n and_o semblance_n then_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o full_a and_o perfect_a measure_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o witness_n and_o set_v they_o on_o their_o foot_n and_o great_a fear_n shall_v fall_v on_o they_o that_o see_v they_o there_o will_v be_v then_o so_o wonderful_a a_o appearance_n of_o divine_a power_n and_o judgement_n as_o upon_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o miracle_n in_o the_o very_a first_o time_n where_o if_o thing_n have_v go_v on_o with_o the_o same_o power_n from_o heaven_n as_o at_o first_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n have_v then_o appear_v but_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n surprise_v they_o at_o 25_o or_o 26._o there_o shall_v be_v a_o voice_n call_v they_o up_o to_o heaven_n and_o as_o in_o the_o cloud_n wherein_o christ_n himself_o ascend_v they_o shall_v ascend_v and_o whereas_o only_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n behold_v he_o their_o enemy_n shall_v behold_v they_o which_o speak_v the_o publickness_n of_o their_o ascension_n and_o the_o mighty_a influence_n it_o will_v have_v and_o in_o the_o same_o hour_n the_o ten_o that_o be_v the_o decem_n principality_n of_o the_o great_a city_n viz._n most_o necessary_o that_o great_a city_n in_o which_o the_o witness_n lay_v dead_a in_o the_o breadth_n of_o it_o fall_v for_o when_o the_o ten_o horn_n that_o give_v state_n and_o altitude_n to_o the_o beast_n fall_v off_o from_o his_o seven_o head_n the_o woman_n that_o sit_v on_o the_o beast_n which_o be_v this_o very_a same_o city-church_n must_v needs_o fall_v from_o that_o height_n with_o which_o the_o beast_n carry_v it_o while_o exalt_v with_o his_o ten_o horn_n which_o substantial_a reason_n will_v recompense_v for_o the_o seem_a impropriety_n of_o such_o a_o use_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o ten_o be_v both_o in_o dan_n and_o this_o prophecy_n so_o essential_a to_o the_o beast_n that_o carry_v the_o woman_n the_o ascent_n of_o the_o witness_n into_o heaven_n i_o understand_v to_o be_v some_o exemplification_n on_o earth_n of_o the_o glory_n and_o triumph_n the_o witness_n of_o christ_n that_o have_v go_v out_o of_o the_o world_n suffer_v for_o christ_n in_o any_o degree_n of_o martyrdom_n have_v at_o this_o time_n in_o heaven_n upon_o this_o change_n of_o the_o world_n to_o christ_n kingdom_n as_o undoubted_o the_o saint_n have_v on_o all_o such_o change_n even_o as_o the_o angel_n joy_n in_o the_o repentance_n of_o sinner_n as_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n triumph_v at_o the_o desolation_n of_o heathenism_n or_o the_o cast_n down_o of_o the_o dragon_n the_o exemplification_n then_o of_o this_o on_o earth_n by_o the_o exalt_a state_n of_o the_o true_a servant_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v the_o importance_n of_o these_o symbol_n and_o in_o the_o same_o hour_n oppose_v to_o the_o same_o or_o one_o hour_n of_o 13._o revel_v 17._o 12_o 13._o the_o ten_o king_n receive_v power_n with_o the_o beast_n and_o give_v then_o their_o kingdom_n to_o he_o and_o therefore_o come_v now_o into_o a_o fit_a counter-parallel_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o earthquake_n such_o a_o mighty_a concussion_n shake_v and_o change_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o city_n shall_v be_v remove_v as_o it_o be_v and_o not_o be_v the_o same_o they_o be_v before_o that_o great_a city_n although_o it_o shall_v remain_v on_o its_o heap_n yet_o its_o tenthly_a or_o ten_o kingdom'd-state_n shall_v utter_o fall_v seven_o thousand_o not_o name_n only_o but_o name_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v slay_v they_o shall_v be_v slay_v in_o
come_v but_o now_o the_o next_o vision_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n give_v we_o in_o prophetic_a cypher_n the_o very_a measure_n of_o the_o beast_n duration_n as_o that_o beast_n be_v symbol_v by_o the_o little_a horn_n viz._n time_n time_n and_o half_a a_o time_n but_o because_o this_o do_v not_o assure_v we_o when_o those_o day_n begin_v nor_o consequent_o where_o they_o end_v the_o vision_z we_o be_v now_o enter_v upon_o will_v teach_v we_o that_o and_o it_o have_v a_o threefold_a aspect_n upon_o time_n to_o this_o end_n 1._o it_o continue_v the_o principal_a line_n of_o time_n from_o creation_n which_o because_o there_o will_v not_o be_v scripture_n history_n to_o maintain_v it_o and_o also_o because_o and_o especial_o because_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gentile_n in_o who_o history_n scripture_n little_a concern_v itself_o be_v draw_v by_o it_o without_o lesser_a period_n but_o as_o the_o account_n of_o the_o church_n case_n in_o relation_n to_o they_o after_o require_v it_o they_o be_v give_v in_o one_o entire_a line_n or_o sum_n 2300_o day_n begin_v contiguous_o from_o ezekiel_n 430_o day_n and_o continuous_o also_o to_o so_o many_o day_n for_o year_n unite_n with_o the_o former_a parcel-line_n and_o with_o the_o 430_o as_o the_o last_o give_v line_n and_o so_o one_o whole_a line_n from_o the_o creation_n be_v constitute_v by_o unite_n these_o several_a parcel_n by_o a_o divine_a certainty_n 2._o it_o determine_v the_o particular_a time_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o persian_a monarchy_n at_o literal_a babylon_n fall_v to_o mystical_a babylon_n fall_v as_o also_o at_o literal_a jerusalem_n restore_v to_o new_a jerusalem_n appear_v for_o antichrist_n break_v intend_v the_o former_a and_o the_o sanctuary_n cleanse_v the_o latter_a 3._o it_o be_v a_o measure_n of_o the_o length_n of_o particular_a line_n give_v after_o this_o from_o time_n to_o time_n as_o they_o be_v give_v in_o scripture_n that_o as_o itself_o be_v distinguish_v into_o several_a period_n by_o they_o so_o it_o be_v a_o boundary_a to_o they_o when_o to_o begin_v and_o end_v that_o together_o they_o may_v be_v symmetral_a to_o this_o whole_a line_n neither_o long_o nor_o short_a and_o therein_o be_v just_o proportion_v to_o one_o another_o even_o till_o this_o line_n call_v most_o emphatical_o by_o our_o lord_n the_o time_n of_o the_o gentile_n luc._n 21._o 24._o be_v fulfil_v that_o the_o vision_n then_o and_o the_o line_n of_o time_n it_o carry_v away_o be_v right_o understand_v these_o thing_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v premise_v 1._o that_o the_o principal_a thing_n in_o these_o vision_n of_o daniel_n except_o that_o single_a vision_n next_o in_o order_n to_o that_o we_o be_v upon_o that_o centre_n in_o messiah_n come_v and_o death_n be_v the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o saint_n have_v the_o dominion_n throughout_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o that_o peculiar_a enemy_n of_o his_o kingdom_n who_o be_v just_o call_v antichrist_n immediate_o precede_v his_o kingdom_n and_o before_o which_o it_o can_v not_o appear_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o this_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n have_v its_o way_n make_v by_o the_o destruction_n of_o antichrist_n there_o be_v so_o many_o representation_n of_o the_o other_o monarchy_n of_o which_o else_o we_o may_v conceive_v the_o holy_a spirit_n have_v no_o more_o touch_v their_o prophecy_n than_o it_o do_v their_o history_n which_o it_o never_o do_v but_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o church_n or_o to_o set_v out_o god_n government_n universal_a over_o the_o world_n and_o his_o judgement_n on_o sinful_a nation_n we_o find_v therefore_o in_o these_o vision_n of_o the_o monarchy_n antichrist_n next_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o great_a subject_n and_o more_o word_n lay_v out_o upon_o he_o than_o upon_o all_o the_o rest_n so_o it_o be_v in_o nebuchadnezzar_n dream_n the_o foot_n and_o toe_n etc._n dan._n 2._o v._n 34._o 41._o etc._n etc._n take_v up_o a_o great_a proportion_n of_o the_o dream_n and_o exposition_n than_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o then_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n flow_v out_o upon_o the_o image_n break_v in_o the_o foot_n so_o in_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n the_o four_o beast_n and_o in_o that_o the_o little_a horn_n employ_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o whole_a vision_n in_o its_o description_n and_o judgement_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n then_o break_v out_o upon_o it_o so_o proportionable_o in_o this_o vision_n he_o than_o that_o will_v understand_v it_o must_v be_v arm_v with_o this_o rule_n as_o preparatory_a 2._o it_o must_v be_v worthy_a our_o advertency_n that_o the_o antichristian_a state_n in_o these_o prophecy_n and_o in_o the_o revelation_n be_v rank_v with_o heathenism_n and_o gentilism_n and_o treat_v with_o much_o less_o regard_n than_o even_o idolatrous_a israel_n or_o judah_n god_n not_o take_v any_o notice_n of_o they_o as_o his_o people_n but_o as_o mere_a gentile_n so_o that_o i_o do_v not_o remember_v any_o parallelism_n of_o they_o with_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n even_o in_o their_o apostasy_n but_o altogether_o with_o those_o that_o be_v alien_n as_o balaam_n jezebel_n the_o daughter_n of_o elth_n baal_n king_n of_o the_o sydonian_o with_o sodom_n egypt_n and_o most_o notorious_o babylon_n and_o so_o be_v represent_v by_o the_o gentile_n tread_v the_o outward_a court_n and_o thus_o the_o corruption_n of_o divine_a worship_n among_o the_o jew_n be_v express_v by_o entertain_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o gentile_n defile_v themselves_o with_o they_o fall_v in_o love_n with_o they_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o sanctuary_n the_o beast_n unite_v with_o the_o heathen_a idolatrous_a monarchy_n come_v into_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o dragon_n be_v the_o grand_a apocalyptick_a figure_n for_o antichrist_n and_o nothing_o of_o christ_n allow_v he_o except_o to_o the_o other_o beast_n have_v born_v as_o a_o lamb_n while_o he_o speak_v as_o a_o dragon_n nor_o of_o the_o jew_n to_o the_o antichristian_a 11._o rev._n 13._o 11._o gentile_n but_o that_o in_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o apostasy_n within_o the_o prophetical_a church_n of_o smyrna_n rev._n 2._o 9_o they_o say_v they_o be_v jew_n but_o be_v not_o but_o lie_v and_o be_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n nor_o any_o thing_n of_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n except_o one_o only_a allusion_n to_o the_o city_n where_o our_o lord_n be_v crucify_v where_o a_o heathen_a power_n preside_v in_o 8._o revel_v 11._o 8._o his_o condemnation_n and_o that_o a_o roman_a too_o to_o signify_v its_o extreme_a hate_n to_o the_o true_a christ_n it_o be_v deep_a dye_n in_o blood_n and_o its_o irrecoverable_a destruction_n for_o which_o jerusalem_n be_v so_o infamous_a and_o for_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n like_o the_o jewish_a church_n be_v break_v off_o from_o the_o true_a olive_n and_o all_o consider_v as_o a_o church_n in_o conjunction_n with_o it_o as_o the_o apostle_n have_v foretell_v rom._n 11._o 6._o make_v the_o allusion_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o true_a christianity_n and_o worship_n of_o it_o be_v symbolise_v by_o the_o pure_a jewish_a worship_n the_o temple_n its_o measure_n ordinance_n as_o they_o stand_v in_o israel_n best_a estate_n be_v the_o ichnography_n of_o the_o perfect_a pure_a christian_a church_n but_o the_o draw_v man_n from_o true_a christianity_n to_o antichristianism_n the_o persecution_n of_o man_n for_o it_o the_o last_o deliverance_n from_o anti-christianism_a and_o its_o persecution_n be_v continual_o give_v out_o in_o parallellisme_n betwixt_o the_o same_o thing_n heretofore_o between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o gentile_n and_o unite_v with_o the_o jew_n great_a deliverance_n and_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n at_o last_o these_o two_o thing_n be_v most_o necessary_a to_o be_v premonish_v for_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o this_o vision_n and_o other_o vision_n also_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v as_o we_o pass_v along_o to_o preserve_v all_o clear_a and_o free_a from_o confusion_n and_o upon_o this_o premonition_n i_o say_v this_o vision_n beginning_n with_o the_o persian_a reign_n go_v on_o through_o the_o grecian_a and_o so_o pass_v through_o the_o whole_a roman_a monarchy_n first_o and_o last_o and_o describe_v a_o line_n run_v parallel_n with_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o the_o gentile_n after_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n at_o the_o end_n of_o which_o ezekiel_n 430_o day_n end_v as_o have_v be_v make_v to_o appear_v and_o they_o be_v the_o last_o joint_n of_o the_o line_n from_o creation_n this_o line_n of_o 230_o day_n join_v with_o it_o and_o continue_v the_o whole_a 21._o acts._n 3._o 21._o line_n from_o creation_n to_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n upon_o this_o premonition_n i_o say_v further_o that_o antiochus_n as_o the_o most_o infamous_a heathen_a prince_n for_o tread_v down_o the_o holy_a and_o pure_a jewish_a worship_n from_o
that_o so_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o not_o only_o two_o or_o three_o but_o many_o witness_n every_o word_n may_v be_v establish_v yet_o it_o appertain_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o gospel_n and_o kingdom_n of_o the_o mediator_n there_o shall_v be_v so_o great_a and_o stupendous_a a_o prophecy_n peculiar_a to_o it_o as_o that_o of_o the_o revelation_n wherein_o god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n be_v for_o ever_o to_o be_v adore_v and_o have_v in_o reverence_n of_o all_o that_o approach_v the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n i_o say_v it_o must_v be_v of_o necessity_n agreeable_a to_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n there_o shall_v be_v beside_o many_o incidental_a prophecy_n so_o divine_o majestic_a a_o prophecy_n as_o this_o of_o the_o apocalypse_v such_o a_o temple_n of_o prophecy_n who_o symbol_n shall_v be_v so_o high_a and_o lofty_a its_o light_n more_o clear_a and_o full_a its_o line_n of_o time_n in_o what_o it_o please_v to_o give_v more_o evident_a and_o certain_a the_o doctrine_n intermingle_v more_o spiritual_a the_o promise_v more_o heavenly_a and_o explain_v the_o threat_v more_o dreadful_a and_o more_o open_a that_o in_o every_o thing_n there_o may_v be_v a_o becomingness_n of_o all_o to_o the_o old_a testament_n unveil_v fulfil_v and_o excel_v in_o the_o new_a and_o according_o we_o shall_v find_v all_o these_o to_o the_o very_a height_n take_v care_n of_o and_o adjust_v we_o shall_v see_v this_o all_o along_o the_o iconism_n and_o figure_n of_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o several_a vision_n in_o the_o doctrine_n in_o the_o solemn_a mention_n of_o the_o lamb_n of_o his_o blood_n so_o often_o memorialize_v as_o a_o antidote_n against_o the_o poison_n of_o antichrist_n as_o also_o the_o ministery_n of_o angel_n and_o their_o most_o peremptory_a abhorrence_n of_o all_o worship_n offer_v to_o they_o it_o be_v only_o number_v line_n of_o time_n till_o the_o 1000_o year_n be_v so_o often_o repeat_v and_o ascertain_v that_o it_o do_v in_o all_o thing_n illustrious_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v that_o grand_a revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o god_n give_v he_o to_o show_v to_o his_o servant_n to_o the_o transcendent_a honour_n of_o the_o son_n by_o who_o he_o thus_o speak_v last_o of_o all_o who_o be_v the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n especial_o of_o the_o world_n to_o 1._o heb._n 1._o 1._o come_v of_o which_o this_o prophecy_n speak_v so_o that_o to_o ravish_v this_o from_o the_o search_n and_o enquiry_n of_o his_o church_n or_o by_o imputation_n of_o immodest_a presumption_n to_o bar_v from_o it_o the_o utmost_a endeavour_n of_o his_o servant_n to_o compare_v so_o great_a a_o prophecy_n and_o its_o event_n be_v to_o take_v from_o they_o one_o of_o the_o principal_a prop_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o obedience_n and_o to_o divest_v the_o new_a testament_n of_o so_o high_a a_o glory_n as_o this_o sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n to_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o take_v heed_n as_o to_o a_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o the_o obscure_a and_o even_o squalid_a air_n of_o the_o apostasy_n till_o the_o bright_a morningstar_n appear_v and_o therefore_o notwithstanding_o all_o prejudices_fw-la the_o apostasy_n have_v raise_v against_o researche_n into_o it_o bless_a be_v he_o that_o read_v and_o they_o who_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o this_o prophecy_n that_o which_o this_o prophecy_n reveal_v be_v the_o glorious_a restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o reign_n with_o his_o saint_n the_o destruction_n and_o consumption_n of_o all_o the_o wicked_a so_o as_o to_o be_v no_o more_o as_o they_o have_v be_v in_o god_n creation_n and_o earth_n psal_n 104._o 35._o the_o sense_n in_o which_o it_o reveal_v be_v not_o only_o prophetical_a doctrinal_a and_o verbal_a but_o real_a and_o eventual_a and_o that_o immediate_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o it_o all_o the_o vision_n in_o their_o own_o order_n each_o in_o their_o season_n come_v quick_o or_o short_o to_o pass_v that_o be_v begin_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o so_o go_v on_o to_o their_o end_n according_a to_o the_o type_n wherein_o they_o be_v imprint_v this_o revelation_n begin_v just_o at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n conjoin_v as_o in_o one_o entire_a act_n and_o time_n with_o his_o ascension_n when_o all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v give_v to_o he_o at_o the_o lord_n day_n dedicate_v by_o himself_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o rise_n and_o the_o publication_n of_o his_o anoint_v by_o the_o come_n down_o of_o 2._o act._n 1._o c._n 2._o the_o holy_a spirit_n then_o can_v he_o say_v behold_v i_o be_v dead_a be_o alive_a and_o live_v for_o evermore_o then_o he_o be_v bring_v near_o to_o the_o ancient_n of_o day_n and_o receive_v the_o assurance_n of_o his_o kingdom_n then_o have_v he_o right_o to_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n though_o he_o be_v please_v to_o stay_v and_o to_o join_v patience_n to_o and_o with_o his_o kingdom_n and_o this_o be_v as_o in_o the_o middle_n 9_o rev._n 1._o 9_o of_o the_o five_o hundred_o sixty_o second_v eu._n mor._n from_o cyrus_n and_o in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o last_o of_o the_o seventi_v of_o the_o seventy_o week_n and_o at_o the_o time_n the_o roman_a empire_n be_v come_v to_o maturity_n in_o the_o autonomy_n of_o augustus_n and_o tiberius_n in_o the_o time_n of_o which_o the_o first_o right_n of_o his_o kingdom_n begin_v and_o ever_o that_o empire_n in_o its_o last_o state_n end_n it_o shall_v be_v set_v up_o in_o glory_n for_o though_o the_o apocalytical_a prophecy_n be_v not_o actual_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n john_n till_o some_o year_n after_o yet_o as_o prophecy_n call_v the_o future_a so_o that_o which_o be_v past_a to_o the_o present_a time_n and_o represent_v in_o a_o entire_a frame_n both_o together_o a_o privilege_n as_o to_o that_o which_o be_v past_a necessary_o allow_v to_o history_n and_o to_o a_o prophetic_a frame_n much_o more_o when_o it_o have_v occasion_n for_o it_o the_o period_n of_o the_o revelation_n till_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v most_o evident_o those_o two_o apocalyptical_a pillar_n bear_v the_o two_o answer_v inscription_n it_o be_v do_v it_o be_v do_v 6._o apoc._n 16._o 17._o c._n 22._o 6._o from_o whence_o the_o kingdom_n begin_v so_o that_o this_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v just_o to_o be_v style_v the_o book_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n in_o its_o several_a offer_n of_o appearance_n and_o rend_v the_o very_a cloud_n to_o show_v itself_o in_o the_o 7._o act_n 1._o 7._o dan._n 12._o 7._o justice_n of_o its_o claim_n and_o yet_o retire_v itself_o till_o the_o very_a moment_n appoint_v by_o the_o father_n and_o swear_v by_o himself_o in_o which_o regard_v this_o prophecy_n be_v call_v a_o book_n both_o in_o daniel_n and_o here_o in_o the_o apocalypse_v on_o all_o occasion_n so_o that_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v proper_o within_o this_o book_n as_o the_o book_n of_o the_o kingdom_n there_o be_v also_o beyond_o the_o thousand_o year_n a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o little_a space_n as_o it_o be_v the_o 20._o revel_v 20._o hour_n of_o the_o thousand-years-day_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o which_o the_o natural_a apostasy_n of_o humane_a nature_n show_v itself_o in_o the_o lukewarm_a laodicean_n church_n and_o in_o gog_n and_o magog_n as_o at_o a_o blush_n but_o the_o whole_a of_o any_o state_n either_o 15._o 1_o cor._n 15._o of_o church_n or_o nation_n below_o immediate_o be_v swallow_v up_o in_o flame_n and_o death_n and_o hell_n with_o their_o whole_a propriety_n shut_v up_o within_o themselves_o and_o the_o kingdom_n resign_v to_o god_n all_o in_o all._n the_o passage_n or_o conveyance_n of_o this_o apocalyptical_a time_n be_v through_o the_o seven_o church_n comprehend_v the_o whole_a time_n within_o themselves_o as_o also_o symbol_n proper_a to_o the_o prophecy_n as_o peculiar_a to_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o then_o the_o whole_a time_n begin_v again_o and_o run_v in_o seven_o seal_n seven_o trumpet_n seven_o voice_n as_o unseal_v thunder_n seven_o vial_n as_o so_o many_o conduit_n tube_n or_o pipe_n of_o the_o whole_a prophecy_n under_o the_o conduct_n and_o government_n of_o the_o lamb_n with_o seven_o eye_n and_o the_o guide_a operation_n of_o the_o seven_o lamp_n the_o seven_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o be_v of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n in_o its_o sevenfold_a operation_n and_o in_o all_o i_o understand_v the_o sabbatical_a number_n derive_v from_o the_o first_o sabbath_n and_o terminate_n in_o the_o last_o great_a sabbatism_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n continue_v with_o the_o sabbatism_n of_o eternity_n thus_o the_o prophecy_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o systeme_n or_o complexes_fw-la of_o vision_n the_o systeme_n of_o the_o
we_o will_v understand_v they_o of_o natural_a angel_n as_o few_o or_o none_o do_v but_o the_o meaning_n be_v the_o seven_o church_n contain_v a_o very_a great_a mystery_n throughout_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o church_n even_o as_o upon_o the_o forehead_n of_o the_o woman_n rev._n 17._o 5._o be_v a_o title_n write_v mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a etc._n etc._n that_o be_v understand_v that_o whole_a inscription_n in_o a_o mystical_a sense_n or_o to_o carry_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o apostate_n church_n in_o all_o succession_n so_o understand_v the_o seven_o church_n carry_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n throughout_o and_o it_o be_v observable_a the_o word_n mystery_n be_v express_o apply_v to_o the_o true_a and_o false_a church_n as_o it_o be_v say_v here_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o seven_o church_n and_o their_o star_n or_o angel_n so_o there_o i_o will_v tell_v thou_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o of_o the_o beast_n the_o fall_v star_n with_o the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n that_o carry_v she_o and_o proportionable_o this_o whole_a prophecy_n of_o the_o kingdom_n draw_v down_o into_o itself_o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o that_o kingdom_n speak_v of_o by_o all_o the_o prophet_n since_o the_o world_n begin_v viz._n the_o true_a church_n in_o glory_n the_o particularise_v upon_o the_o church_n the_o so_o apocalyptick_a argu._n 2_o number_n seven_o assure_v we_o it_o will_v bear_v its_o proportion_n to_o all_o the_o other_o seven_n and_o see_v there_o be_v no_o seven_n to_o introduce_v they_o nor_o to_o receive_v they_o and_o carry_v they_o on_o they_o must_v themselves_o by_o their_o own_o time_n seven_o and_o symbol_n embrace_v the_o whole_a apocalyptical_a time_n and_o its_o seven_n for_o the_o book_n of_o it_o be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o kingdom_n the_o kingdom_n be_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n the_o church_n be_v the_o true_a kingdom_n when_o they_o come_v to_o their_o glory_n and_o so_o a_o mystery_n the_o apostate_n church_n be_v a_o mock_n kingdom_n the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n foist_v into_o the_o place_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o so_o a_o mystery_n but_o a_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o universal_a monarchy_n be_v a_o empire_n in_o a_o church_n of_o which_o he_o be_v the_o head_n the_o last_o state_n of_o the_o roman_a monarchy_n be_v a_o imperialism_n by_o virtue_n of_o a_o ecclesiastical_a image_n make_v to_o it_o which_o be_v a_o false_a christship_n that_o be_v a_o empire_n in_o a_o apostate_n church_n of_o which_o antichrist_n be_v the_o head_n how_o fit_o therefore_o be_v these_o thing_n display_v in_o the_o symbolism_n of_o church_n it_o be_v certain_a there_o have_v be_v a_o christian_a church_n in_o all_o argu._n 3_o age_n from_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n to_o this_o day_n and_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n and_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n this_o be_v ground_v upon_o those_o two_o place_n matt._n 16._o 18._o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n either_o of_o hell_n as_o it_o signify_v the_o grave_a mortality_n and_o death_n or_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o matt._n 28._o ult_n lo_o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n nor_o be_v this_o controvert_v among_o any_o christian_n from_o hence_o it_o follow_v we_o can_v be_v time-bound_a or_o straighten_a in_o space_n of_o time_n to_o place_v these_o succession_n in_o for_o there_o must_v necessary_o be_v a_o succession_n of_o this_o christian_a church_n in_o several_a age_n and_o state_n and_o so_o must_v continue_v till_o the_o end_n which_o must_v as_o necessary_o run_v a_o long_a apocalyptical_a time_n and_o so_o give_v a_o bottom_n to_o found_v such_o symbol_n upon_o if_o it_o please_v as_o we_o suppose_v it_o do_v the_o prophetic_a spirit_n to_o give_v they_o as_o there_o must_v necessary_o have_v be_v a_o variety_n of_o state_n of_o arg._n 4_o this_o one_o church_n so_o the_o first_o of_o they_o must_v needs_o have_v be_v settle_v and_o found_v in_o doctrine_n worship_n rule_n of_o life_n order_n and_o discipline_n by_o immediate_a inspiration_n divine_a authority_n and_o institution_n through_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n this_o be_v most_o evident_a from_o that_o book_n of_o scripture_n write_v to_o that_o purpose_n the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o also_o from_o all_o the_o apostolical_a epistle_n from_o hence_o it_o follow_v the_o apostolical_a church_n in_o its_o apostolical_a state_n be_v first_o in_o order_n whether_o therefore_o we_o will_v allow_v it_o to_o be_v symbollical_o represent_v or_o not_o in_o that_o first_o church_n of_o ephesus_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o labour_n and_o patience_n twice_o repeat_v that_o try_v they_o which_o say_v they_o be_v apostle_n and_o be_v not_o and_o find_v they_o liar_n import_v the_o exact_a consign_v all_o apostolical_a truth_n and_o rule_n into_o a_o authentic_a canon_n of_o scripture_n do_v most_o admirable_o represent_v that_o true_o primitive_a apostolical_a state_n beside_o the_o daily_a or_o every_o day_n miscarriage_n from_o this_o excellent_a arg._n 5_o state_n by_o heresy_n error_n and_o bad_a practice_n to_o which_o degenerate_a and_o deep_o corrupt_v humane_a nature_n be_v so_o subject_a and_o of_o which_o apostolical_a write_n take_v so_o continual_a notice_n there_o be_v foretell_v a_o eminent_a visible_a and_o notorious_a apostasy_n fix_v and_o settle_v upon_o its_o own_o base_a out_o of_o which_o antichrist_n be_v to_o come_v and_o so_o very_o fit_a to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o in_o this_o book_n of_o the_o kingdom_n now_o this_o apostasy_n be_v declare_v express_o by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n to_o be_v at_o work_n in_o a_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n and_o the_o spirit_n say_v express_o that_o in_o the_o latter_a time_n which_o latter_a time_n as_o we_o have_v before_o affirm_v be_v then_o begin_v though_o every_o day_n more_o and_o more_o latter_a some_o that_o be_v not_o a_o few_o but_o a_o certain_a sort_n of_o man_n that_o shall_v make_v a_o body_n or_o species_n of_o man_n shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n if_o then_o it_o have_v begin_v so_o ephesus_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 1._o write_a to_o timothy_n as_o then_o at_o ephesus_n early_o in_o some_o lineament_n of_o it_o although_o not_o in_o that_o of_o nicolaitanism_n and_o that_o it_o daily_o proceed_v and_o grow_v much_o high_o after_o the_o apostle_n departure_n or_o death_n raven_a wolf_n and_o man_n teach_v perverse_a thing_n arise_v from_o christian_n themselves_o etc._n act._n 20._o 28._o etc._n etc._n remonstrate_v also_o to_o this_o very_a church_n of_o ephesus_n their_o leave_v their_o first_o love_n the_o remove_v this_o candlestick_n out_o of_o the_o superiority_n and_o excellency_n of_o primogeniture_n and_o confer_v it_o on_o smyrna_n in_o the_o crown_n of_o life_n and_o philadelphia_n in_o the_o sceptre_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n be_v most_o lively_a symbol_n to_o such_o a_o purpose_n though_o yet_o the_o overcomer_n of_o this_o protoplast_n church_n be_v assure_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n this_o apostasy_n be_v to_o become_v so_o grand_a a_o apostasy_n it_o arg._n 6_o must_v needs_o proceed_v and_o work_v on_o by_o degree_n so_o as_o that_o some_o church_n and_o its_o bishop_n derive_v itself_o from_o the_o apostle_n shall_v very_o elderly_a veer_fw-mi towards_o a_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o assumption_n by_o it_o and_o deference_n of_o advantage_n to_o it_o by_o many_o in_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n tend_v towards_o and_o prepare_v for_o such_o a_o apostasy_n that_o it_o gain_v pretension_n undesign_v yet_o to_o it_o particular_o to_o entitle_v itself_o to_o such_o a_o bloom_a antichristian_a power_n as_o be_v foretell_v to_o come_v out_o of_o the_o apostasy_n for_o if_o it_o can_v not_o derive_v high_a from_o antiquity_n it_o can_v not_o rise_v to_o that_o grandeur_n of_o apostasy_n under_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o universal_a public_a christian_a church_n may_v not_o only_o remain_v pure_a but_o be_v first_o in_o deep_a suffering_n for_o christ_n and_o so_o fill_v up_o the_o number_n of_o martyr_n die_v under_o the_o pagan_a draconick_a empire_n but_o also_o receive_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n and_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n in_o a_o figure_n by_o the_o empire_n become_v christian_a as_o it_o do_v in_o constantine_n now_o what_o type_n of_o such_o a_o state_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v more_o express_a in_o all_o this_o than_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n for_o whether_o it_o be_v so_o design_v by_o the_o spirit_n or_o not_o it_o be_v certain_a in_o
final_a judgement_n over_o the_o book_n be_v quite_o unseal_v in_o death_n the_o last_o enemy_n overcome_v and_o then_o the_o book_n the_o symbol_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v resign_v with_o the_o kingdom_n itself_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o father_n 9_o hereupon_o the_o state_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o its_o apostolical_a purity_n with_o the_o order_n of_o the_o live_a creature_n first_o and_o then_o draw_v that_o of_o the_o elder_n along_o with_o it_o in_o a_o song_n of_o redemption_n in_o praise_n of_o the_o lamb_n with_o a_o prophecy_n of_o his_o kingdom_n in_o which_o his_o servant_n and_o saint_n shall_v reign_v above_o the_o earth_n or_o over_o it_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v in_o several_a place_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n join_v with_o a_o genitive_a case_n particular_o matt._n 25._o 21._o 23._o i_o will_v make_v thou_o ruler_n over_o many_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 10._o to_o sum_v up_o all_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o thousand_o year_n kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v in_o a_o second_o song_n of_o praise_n wherein_o all_o thing_n bow_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n as_o lord_n and_o that_o not_o ceremonial_o but_o in_o real_a subjection_n phil._n 2._o 10._o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n and_o under_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n for_o the_o four_o live_a creature_n have_v say_v amen_o to_o this_o high_a celebration_n of_o christ_n the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n as_o have_v by_o the_o apostolical_a church_n receive_v a_o explicate_v knowledge_n of_o christ_n to_o show_v the_o new_a testament_n do_v not_o at_o all_o derogate_a from_o the_o old_a the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n after_o they_o have_v fall_v down_o with_o the_o four_o live_a creature_n and_o join_v in_o a_o song_n of_o praise_n to_o the_o lamb_n now_o as_o make_v up_o the_o consent_n worship_v he_o that_o live_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o and_o conclude_v that_o which_o the_o four_o live_a creature_n or_o the_o apostolical_a ministry_n begin_v and_o herein_o show_v the_o resignation_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n at_o last_o that_o he_o may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o rev._n 4._o 10._o compare_v with_o rev._n 5._o 8._o 14._o for_o as_o all_o begin_v in_o god_n that_o make_v all_o thing_n so_o here_o it_o end_n in_o he_o the_o seal_a book_n be_v now_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n and_o all_o due_a acknowledgement_n make_v to_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n and_o to_o the_o lamb_n immediate_o follow_v the_o open_n of_o the_o seal_n and_o therein_o the_o course_n of_o time_n flow_v out_o and_o so_o flow_v on_o of_o which_o we_o be_v now_o to_o take_v a_o particular_a and_o strict_a account_n only_o i_o will_v desire_v every_o person_n that_o set_v his_o mind_n and_o thought_n to_o view_v this_o so_o augu_v inthronization_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o lamb_n that_o he_o will_v ponder_v within_o himself_o whether_o the_o desolate_v either_o the_o jew_n or_o the_o heathen_a empire_n can_v be_v event_n great_a enough_o for_o so_o stupendous_a a_o pre-representation_n or_o any_o thing_n less_o than_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n can_v answer_v to_o it_o and_o now_o that_o we_o may_v establish_v the_o line_n of_o time_n according_a to_o these_o seal_n and_o the_o time_n of_o their_o open_n there_o be_v three_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v 1._o what_o it_o be_v that_o be_v the_o principal_a jewel_n and_o treasure_n that_o lie_v under_o these_o seal_n and_o so_o to_o be_v set_v free_a by_o the_o unloose_v they_o 2._o what_o be_v the_o principal_a and_o supreme_a visum_fw-la or_o thing_n to_o be_v see_v in_o every_o seal_n and_o the_o open_n of_o it_o and_o how_o it_o serve_v the_o disclose_v that_o jewel_n 3._o what_o be_v the_o true_a method_n of_o fix_v the_o certain_a time_n that_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o seal_n take_v up_o and_o how_o it_o be_v to_o be_v measure_v and_o fix_v if_o we_o can_v now_o determine_v and_o settle_v aright_o upon_o the_o resolution_n of_o each_o of_o these_o particular_n we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o understand_v this_o first_o sett_n of_o apocalyptical_a vision_n and_o to_o have_v ample_a satisfaction_n concern_v they_o and_o have_v great_a light_n into_o the_o follow_a vision_n also_o 1._o as_o to_o the_o first_o then_o that_o great_a treasure_n and_o jewel_n of_o truth_n that_o be_v enclose_v within_o these_o seal_n and_o so_o also_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o trumpet_n ultimate_o sound_v unto_o be_v the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n every_o event_n and_o the_o stage_n of_o time_n it_o be_v to_o pass_v over_o be_v as_o a_o seal_n or_o stop_v upon_o this_o kingdom_n till_o it_o open_v into_o glory_n and_o the_o open_n of_o every_o seal_n be_v a_o advance_n towards_o it_o and_o although_o when_o the_o seven_o seal_n be_v open_v there_o appear_v a_o great_a and_o more_o prodigious_a cause_n of_o delay_n viz._n the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n yet_o every_o trumpet_n be_v as_o a_o alarm_n of_o war_n to_o the_o subdue_a that_o mock-kingdom_n that_o rise_v in_o despite_n and_o opposition_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o because_o all_o thing_n be_v so_o set_v and_o place_v in_o their_o season_n and_o order_n that_o no_o one_o thing_n can_v come_v to_o pass_v before_o that_o which_o be_v set_v before_o it_o have_v have_v its_o free_a egress_n and_o event_n therefore_o every_o of_o these_o event_n and_o the_o open_n of_o the_o seal_n to_o let_v they_o out_o though_o they_o do_v not_o in_o the_o issue_n open_a to_o the_o true_a appearance_n of_o that_o kingdom_n yet_o because_o they_o do_v as_o it_o be_v what_o they_o can_v and_o there_o be_v a_o remove_n of_o so_o many_o prohibent_n or_o obstacle_n to_o that_o kingdom_n and_o time_n so_o advance_v from_o point_n to_o point_v that_o by_o the_o open_n every_o seal_n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v near_o to_o its_o appearance_n therefore_o they_o be_v just_o understand_v and_o expound_v to_o be_v seal_n unloose_v and_o open_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n now_o beside_o those_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o it_o be_v do_v it_o be_v do_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o apocalyptical_a time_n and_o all_o its_o event_n whither_o they_o one_o and_o all_o run_v together_o beside_o this_o there_o be_v this_o absolute_a assurance_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v under_o the_o seal_n the_o kingdom_n make_v so_o magnificent_a a_o show_n of_o itself_o at_o the_o six_o seal_n that_o have_v not_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v seal_v in_o their_o forehead_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o then_o appear_v with_o he_o in_o glory_n the_o kingdom_n have_v even_o then_o appear_v for_o in_o constantine_n christian_a empire_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o reign_n or_o at_o the_o victory_n of_o theodosius_n the_o great_a over_o heathenism_n of_o which_o he_o endeavour_v the_o utter_a extirpation_n that_o kingdom_n so_o far_o come_v out_o of_o its_o retirement_n that_o there_o be_v a_o solemn_a and_o loud_a doxology_n in_o heaven_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n be_v come_v and_o yet_o at_o the_o very_a same_o time_n the_o woman_n be_v record_v as_o flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n rev._n 12._o 10._o 2._o the_o first_o particular_a then_o be_v resolve_v with_o so_o much_o evidence_n and_o assurance_n we_o may_v with_o the_o great_a clearness_n resolve_v concern_v the_o second_o or_o the_o principal_a visum_fw-la of_o every_o seal_n open_v for_o it_o must_v be_v some_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n define_v by_o the_o join_n together_o the_o voice_n that_o summon_v to_o the_o sight_n and_o observation_n so_o far_o as_o these_o voice_n continue_v and_o then_o when_o they_o cease_v the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v consider_v by_o the_o visa_fw-la themselves_o as_o under_o the_o cessation_n of_o those_o voice_n and_o by_o any_o sort_n of_o voice_n we_o can_v find_v equivalent_a to_o they_o and_o in_o this_o method_n and_o no_o other_o that_o i_o can_v understand_v we_o may_v just_o and_o true_o comprehend_v the_o intention_n and_o signification_n of_o the_o seal_n for_o if_o all_o the_o seal_n carry_v on_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n by_o so_o many_o degree_n and_o step_n of_o advance_n as_o i_o have_v in_o some_o measure_n i_o hope_v make_v evident_a they_o do_v by_o undeniable_a proof_n than_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o every_o seal_n have_v some_o state_n of_o that_o kingdom_n protuberant_a or_o swell_a out_o in_o its_o appearance_n upon_o that_o open_n and_o that_o the_o voice_n that_o say_v come_v and_o see_v call_v to_o observe_v it_o and_o
the_o begin_n of_o this_o line_n which_o be_v one_o great_a confirmation_n that_o we_o be_v upon_o the_o true_a time_n of_o it_o for_o to_o declare_v this_o as_o it_o be_v with_o industry_n there_o be_v even_o thirty_o join_v to_o the_o 1260_o and_o more_o open_o three_o fifteen_o or_o forty_o five_o to_o the_o 1290_o that_o we_o may_v thereby_o be_v engage_v to_o look_v back_o upon_o the_o whole_a line_n and_o find_v it_o throughout_o so_o compact_v as_o may_v be_v easy_o compute_v and_o have_v be_v before_o observe_v on_o daniel_n vision_n 3._o each_o community_n have_v its_o just_a share_n in_o the_o intimate_a and_o full_a extend_a time_n of_o this_o line_n and_o each_o twice_o give_v the_o beast_n have_v first_o his_o intimate_a time_n twice_o give_v in_o daniel_n and_o by_o two_o forty_o two_o month_n give_v first_o to_o his_o gentile_n till_o his_o own_o rise_n and_o then_o forty_o two_o month_n to_o himself_o he_o have_v the_o utmost_a extent_n of_o time_n time_n half_a time_n as_o before_o declare_v and_o draw_v out_o of_o the_o 2300_o evening_n in_o just_a correspondence_n with_o which_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n as_o collect_v and_o congregat_v in_o the_o woman_n the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v accuse_v as_o have_v relation_n to_o no_o church_n and_o single_a in_o the_o witness_n and_o the_o seed_n who_o have_v the_o witness_n that_o 17._o apo._n 12._o 17._o the_o church_n may_v not_o seem_v a_o notion_n only_o have_v each_o one_o and_o the_o same_o 1260_o da._n draw_v out_o of_o the_o 2300_o morning_n assign_v to_o they_o and_o the_o witness_n three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a and_o the_o woman_n three_o time_n and_o a_o half_a or_o season_n or_o intimate_v time_n answer_v the_o beast_n intimate_a time_n who_o must_v have_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n as_o a_o subject_a to_o work_v upon_o while_n his_o tyranny_n last_v now_o that_o the_o time_n at_o large_a or_o the_o twice_o 1260_o day_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o same_o and_o differ_v only_o in_o notion_n as_o the_o church_n and_o the_o witness_n or_o the_o seed_n that_o have_v the_o witness_v of_o jesus_n do_v be_v most_o evident_a because_o lie_v within_o the_o same_o continent_n of_o time_n time_n semi_a time_n and_o be_v both_o of_o the_o long_a reach_n and_o exact_o of_o the_o same_o size_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a they_o shall_v begin_v or_o end_v soon_o one_o than_o another_o as_o we_o have_v find_v it_o possible_a the_o gentile_n and_o the_o beast_n month_n may_v do_v for_o neither_o be_v they_o so_o unite_v as_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o witness_n and_o their_o month_n though_o of_o the_o same_o size_n one_o with_o another_o be_v yet_o not_o of_o a_o equal_a extent_n to_o time_n time_n half_a time_n at_o their_o full_a length_n nor_o to_o the_o 1260_o day_n the_o just_a measure_n of_o the_o three_o time_n and_o half_a although_o both_o the_o forty_o two_o month_n unite_n as_o we_o have_v say_v be_v neither_o long_o nor_o short_a than_o the_o 1260_o day_n nor_o than_o the_o three_o time_n and_o half_a the_o common_a womb_n of_o all_o and_o even_o so_o the_o three_o time_n and_o half_a of_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o three_o day_n and_o half_a of_o the_o witness_n must_v be_v the_o same_o also_o see_v the_o witness_n and_o the_o woman_n be_v the_o same_o and_o the_o 1260_o day_n the_o same_o and_o no_o difference_n but_o only_o notional_a as_o be_v explain_v for_o if_o they_o be_v different_a the_o woman_n shall_v have_v no_o parallel_n to_o the_o three_o day_n and_o half_a of_o the_o witness_n nor_o the_o witness_n have_v any_o parallel_n with_o the_o three_o time_n and_o half_a of_o the_o witness_n which_o as_o most_o unbecoming_a so_o uniform_a a_o type_n be_v impossible_a also_o in_o such_o a_o sameness_n thus_o the_o march_n or_o outlying_a border_n as_o well_o as_o the_o intimate_v time_n be_v full_a on_o the_o side_n of_o both_o community_n the_o beast_n tyranny_n and_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n the_o last_o seventy_o five_o year_n by_o the_o voice_n revel_v 14._o and_o by_o the_o vial_n rev._n 16._o move_v on_o to_o the_o two_o utmost_a pillar_n of_o time_n it_o be_v do_v it_o be_v do_v rev._n 16._o 17._o rev._n 21._o 6._o object_n in_o the_o former_a or_o after_o part_n of_o this_o discourse_n i_o offer_v as_o i_o hope_v most_o convictive_a proof_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n in_o particular_a and_o answer_v all_o objection_n i_o shall_v only_o at_o this_o time_n remove_v this_o one_o viz._n there_o seem_v no_o more_o reason_n to_o understand_v the_o forty_o two_o month_n as_o lunar_a month_n than_o the_o day_n of_o year_n as_o lunar_a year_n answ_n there_o be_v very_o great_a difference_n for_o if_o we_o look_v throughout_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o whole_a manner_n of_o jewish_a computation_n of_o time_n we_o shall_v find_v they_o always_o understand_v month_n lunar_a month_n and_o the_o very_a solemnity_n of_o their_o new_a moon_n absolute_o require_v it_o so_o that_o to_o understand_v they_o otherwise_o must_v needs_o be_v to_o understand_v against_o that_o constant_a use_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o name_n of_o their_o month_n scripture_n use_v but_o now_o their_o year_n be_v so_o necessary_o solar_a year_n for_o there_o can_v indeed_o be_v no_o year_n but_o strict_o solar_a that_o they_o most_o industrious_o provide_v to_o adequate_v their_o lunar_a time_n to_o their_o solar_a by_o intercalation_n and_o insert_v month_n or_o a_o double_a adar_n which_o be_v their_o last_o month_n of_o the_o year_n we_o every_o leap-year_n by_o a_o double_a twenty_o eight_o of_o february_n as_o may_v be_v see_v by_o the_o learned_a in_o that_o excellent_a tract_n of_o maimonides_n of_o intercalation_n which_o give_v great_a light_n to_o this_o whole_a matter_n as_o shall_v be_v far_o take_v notice_n of_o in_o the_o after_o management_n of_o this_o discourse_n have_v give_v this_o general_a view_n of_o this_o grand_a prophetical_a line_n of_o time_n which_o appear_v to_o be_v of_o sovereign_a use_n to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o the_o so_o often_o repetition_n of_o it_o i_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o make_v these_o practical_a remark_n upon_o it_o for_o the_o universal_a profit_n of_o all_o that_o read_v it_o it_o ought_v to_o administer_v no_o scandal_n to_o we_o that_o christianity_n remark_n 1_o have_v yet_o have_v no_o great_a effect_n in_o the_o universe_n upon_o jew_n mahometan_n pagan_n that_o it_o have_v not_o win_v upon_o the_o world_n to_o a_o universal_a conversion_n to_o it_o that_o it_o have_v not_o prevail_v upon_o christian_n themselves_o to_o high_a degree_n of_o religious_a and_o holy_a affection_n and_o action_n that_o it_o have_v not_o reconcile_v man_n more_o to_o one_o another_o and_o make_v the_o wolf_n and_o the_o lamb_n to_o lie_v down_o together_o that_o it_o have_v not_o fill_v the_o earth_n with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n as_o the_o water_n cover_v the_o sea_n that_o it_o have_v not_o derive_v down_o a_o more_o universal_a state_n of_o outward_a blessing_n prosperity_n peace_n and_o happiness_n for_o these_o be_v the_o great_a promise_n and_o pretension_n of_o the_o kingdom_n christ_n design_v to_o erect_v in_o the_o world_n now_o a_o enemy_n have_v do_v all_o this_o in_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n the_o old_a dragon_n the_o serpent_n satan_n have_v inhabit_v and_o act_v a_o bestian_a empire_n first_o as_o pagan_a and_o in_o the_o very_a appearance_n of_o a_o dragon_n watch_v to_o devour_v the_o manly_a birth_n of_o christianity_n and_o since_o that_o empire_n become_v christian_a in_o a_o bestian_a kingdom_n of_o apostasy_n and_o this_o have_v surprise_v and_o cut_v off_o the_o bless_a emanation_n of_o christianity_n and_o the_o gospel_n and_o make_v the_o christian_a world_n except_o in_o some_o small_a choose_a part_n of_o it_o like_o the_o wilderness_n like_o heathen_a pagan_a nation_n and_o kingdom_n full_a of_o scandal_n to_o the_o great_a hindrance_n of_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n from_o submission_n to_o the_o sceptre_n of_o christ_n or_o take_v upon_o they_o his_o name_n and_o profession_n and_o make_v ineffectual_a this_o profession_n to_o the_o very_a professor_n of_o it_o and_o this_o have_v be_v lo_o these_o twelve_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n wait_v only_o till_o the_o ten_o be_v run_v out_o also_o and_o you_o shall_v see_v a_o great_a change_n in_o the_o world_n than_o ever_o yet_o it_o have_v know_v christianity_n shall_v then_o prevail_v more_o in_o a_o little_a time_n than_o it_o have_v do_v ever_o yet_o the_o light_n of_o one_o day_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o light_n of_o seven_o till_o it_o grow_v bright_a and_o bright_a to_o the_o perfect_a day_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n the_o first_o
usage_n by_o pharaoh_n argue_v against_o their_o deliverance_n by_o moses_n all_o the_o disaffection_n in_o the_o age_n to_o interpretation_n of_o prophecy_n or_o its_o insensibleness_n of_o they_o can_v no_o more_o disprove_v they_o than_o christ_n come_v as_o a_o thief_n upon_o sardis_n at_o a_o hour_n it_o know_v not_o shall_v be_v disprove_v by_o the_o sleepiness_n and_o unwatchfulness_n of_o that_o church_n let_v we_o then_o with_o resolution_n constancy_n of_o obedience_n strength_n of_o faith_n labour_n of_o love_n patience_n of_o hope_n wait_v for_o and_o come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o these_o ten_o day_n and_o from_o they_o to_o the_o 1335_o day_n where_o blessedness_n shall_v certain_o be_v but_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v we_o may_v die_v before_o those_o ten_o year_n be_v come_v to_o their_o period_n and_o there_o be_v no_o probability_n or_o possibility_n we_o shall_v live_v to_o the_o seventy_o five_o beyond_o or_o the_o 1335_o of_o blessedness_n i_o answer_v the_o saint_n of_o god_n live_v on_o earth_n shall_v receive_v their_o share_n in_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o the_o several_a degree_n of_o it_o and_o they_o that_o die_v hope_v wait_a desire_v pray_v shall_v be_v raise_v in_o the_o very_a same_o posture_n of_o soul_n wherein_o they_o die_v so_o that_o they_o who_o by_o a_o general_a faith_n and_o obedience_n wait_v and_o come_v in_o daniel_n time_n and_o ever_o since_o viz._n by_o earnest_a prayer_n come_v lord_n jesus_n come_v quick_o shall_v be_v bless_v even_o as_o they_o who_o by_o particular_a faith_n and_o obedience_n wait_v and_o come_v at_o the_o time_n itself_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o soul_n of_o saint_n above_o the_o spirit_n of_o just_a man_n who_o shall_v be_v perfect_v at_o that_o time_n celebrate_v in_o heaven_n all_o the_o advances_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n even_o as_o they_o pray_v for_o it_o as_o the_o soul_n under_o the_o altar_n cry_v how_o long_a lord_n etc._n etc._n so_o they_o rejoice_v at_o every_o rise_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n so_o do_v the_o same_o soul_n rev._n 12._o 10._o so_o rev._n 14._o 3._o they_o that_o sing_v that_o new_a song_n harp_v with_o their_o harp_n so_o they_o rev._n 15._o 3._o so_o they_o rev._n 19_o etc._n etc._n such_o be_v the_o universal_a song_n of_o triumph_n of_o the_o palm-bearing_a company_n revel_v 7._o 10._o let_v we_o not_o therefore_o despond_v but_o be_v abundant_a in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n know_v our_o labour_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a in_o the_o lord_n why_o shall_v it_o be_v think_v a_o incredible_a thing_n that_o god_n remark_n 6_o shall_v draw_v in_o his_o word_n the_o plot_n of_o future_a time_n to_o so_o great_a a_o period_n as_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n that_o all_o futurity_n be_v within_o the_o grasp_v of_o infinite_a omniscience_n can_v be_v doubt_v know_v to_o god_n be_v all_o his_o work_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n the_o scheme_n of_o all_o that_o have_v be_v before_o it_o be_v or_o that_o shall_v be_v be_v always_o with_o he_o as_o if_o it_o just_a now_o be_v in_o all_o the_o circumstance_n and_o life_n of_o a_o present_a appearance_n in_o who_o eternity_n all_o present_a past_a to_o come_v be_v all_o one_o the_o whole_a table_n of_o time_n be_v always_o before_o he_o do_v it_o then_o pertain_v to_o the_o prerogative_n of_o omniscience_n that_o future_a thing_n shall_v be_v know_v only_o to_o himself_o it_o do_v so_o indeed_o any_o further_a than_o he_o be_v please_v to_o reveal_v they_o but_o he_o that_o challenge_v the_o false_a divinity_n of_o the_o heathen_a that_o they_o can_v not_o declare_v thing_n to_o come_v have_v certain_o give_v 23._o isa_n 42._o 23._o instance_n of_o his_o own_o prescience_n and_o demonstration_n of_o it_o to_o his_o people_n have_v he_o not_o do_v so_o in_o all_o age_n by_o his_o servant_n the_o prophet_n be_v he_o not_o as_o liberal_a to_o the_o age_n of_o christianity_n to_o the_o state_n of_o thing_n under_o the_o gospel_n of_o his_o son_n who_o he_o have_v constitute_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o put_v in_o subjection_n to_o he_o the_o world_n to_o come_v of_o which_o we_o speak_v or_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o divine_a truth_n so_o great_a that_o even_o as_o immediate_a appearance_n the_o power_n of_o miracle_n and_o extraordinary_a revelation_n have_v cease_v since_o the_o full_a settlement_n and_o seal_v the_o volume_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o gospel_n so_o prophecy_n need_v not_o now_o this_o indeed_o have_v much_o of_o reason_n yet_o even_o as_o all_o truth_n be_v comprise_v in_o that_o volume_n so_o be_v the_o grand_a revolution_n pertain_v to_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o same_o volume_n and_o therefore_o whatever_o god_n have_v do_v for_o the_o former_a world_n the_o very_a same_o have_v he_o sum_v up_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n when_o therefore_o we_o have_v beside_o the_o interspersion_n of_o prophecy_n in_o several_a place_n of_o it_o a_o book_n whole_o dedicate_v to_o prophecy_n bless_a be_v he_o that_o hear_v and_o read_v the_o word_n of_o this_o prophecy_n have_v we_o not_o reason_n then_o to_o expect_v the_o course_n of_o thing_n to_o the_o very_a end_n in_o it_o but_o do_v not_o the_o prophecy_n itself_o say_v the_o thing_n be_v short_o to_o come_v to_o pass_v so_o that_o what_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o it_o pertain_v to_o the_o primitive_a age_n the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o time_n when_o christianity_n be_v well_o settle_v and_o till_o pagan_a rome_n become_v christian_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o the_o divine_a revelator_n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n do_v say_v the_o thing_n be_v short_o to_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o be_v to_o begin_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v they_o be_v then_o upon_o motion_n but_o as_o a_o great_a army_n be_v say_v to_o come_v immediate_o when_o the_o avant-corriers_a be_v come_v or_o come_v although_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o rear_n may_v be_v considerable_a distance_n off_o so_o this_o whole_a series_n and_o chain_n of_o event_n in_o the_o revelation_n come_v quick_o although_o the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o part_n differ_v so_o many_o age_n be_v it_o not_o clear_a and_o visible_a that_o there_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o thing_n and_o the_o end_n of_o thing_n in_o every_o man_n apprehension_n plain_a and_o evident_a that_o be_v from_o the_o resurrection_n and_o to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o why_o then_o shall_v we_o not_o believe_v there_o be_v the_o middle_a of_o thing_n also_o why_o shall_v we_o imagine_v prophecy_n have_v make_v such_o a_o leap_n over_o the_o between_o lie_v time_n see_v they_o be_v very_o great_a do_v it_o not_o behoove_v his_o church_n and_o servant_n to_o know_v of_o so_o great_a and_o wide_o spread_v a_o imposture_n as_o mahometanisme_n be_v it_o nothing_o to_o it_o christianity_n shall_v be_v in_o so_o low_a and_o dark_a a_o state_n as_o it_o be_v from_o the_o low_a fall_n of_o the_o western_a empire_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o eastern_a empire_n in_o both_o which_o the_o principal_a residence_n of_o it_o be_v and_o so_o long_a space_n as_o from_o 666_o to_o 1453._o but_o still_o it_o may_v be_v say_v if_o such_o a_o prophecy_n be_v it_o do_v not_o become_v we_o to_o pry_v into_o it_o it_o be_v the_o ark_n of_o secret_a thing_n that_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o we_o why_o then_o do_v christ_n say_v bless_a be_v he_o that_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o this_o prophecy_n why_o do_v he_o command_v he_o that_o have_v wisdom_n and_o understanding_n to_o count_v the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n why_o do_v he_o in_o explication_n of_o the_o seven_o head_n say_v here_o be_v the_o mind_n that_o have_v wisdom_n why_o have_v christ_n the_o revelation_n to_o show_v to_o his_o servant_n but_o be_v it_o not_o all_o one_o as_o if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v reveal_v since_o the_o revelation_n be_v not_o pretend_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o former_a time_n i_o answer_v we_o do_v not_o know_v what_o be_v understand_v the_o apostasy_n so_o cover_v and_o muffle_v all_o thing_n and_o do_v yet_o so_o darken_v they_o the_o universal_a prejudice_n against_o the_o explanation_n of_o this_o prophecy_n be_v i_o doubt_v not_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o apostasy_n but_o that_o there_o have_v go_v a_o stream_n of_o light_n from_o hence_o to_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o witness_n in_o every_o age_n be_v to_o i_o out_o of_o all_o question_n and_o that_o it_o have_v discover_v the_o thing_n most_o necessary_a to_o that_o age_n although_o the_o light_n have_v be_v not_o only_o clear_a but_o the_o knowledge_n that_o such_o a_o light_n have_v be_v more_o certain_a to_o we_o since_o the_o last_o age_n and_o half_n and_o shall_v be_v every_o day_n clear_a and_o clear_a when_o
same_o account_n a_o persecution_n of_o the_o dragon_n for_o the_o mahometan_n be_v from_o their_o very_a original_n adversary_n to_o this_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v anoint_v substitute_v a_o imposture_n of_o sovereignty_n and_o prophetism_n in_o the_o place_n of_o it_o and_o all_o this_o within_o the_o universal_a roman_a monarchy_n the_o propriety_n of_o christ_n their_o deluge_n of_o power_n and_o people_n impetuous_o overflow_a with_o a_o false_a religion_n be_v then_o most_o just_o call_v a_o flood_n out_o of_o satan_n mouth_n act_v as_o a_o dragon_n according_a to_o the_o notion_n of_o abstract_n draconism_n and_o so_o rage_a and_o foam_v with_o hostile_a opposition_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n notwithstanding_o some_o seem_a acknowledgement_n of_o he_o in_o mahometanism_n as_o a_o prophet_n but_o truckle_v under_o that_o infamous_a false_a prophet_n this_o then_o be_v the_o first_o account_n of_o draconism_n it_o be_v very_o easy_a to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o first_o doubt_n for_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o be_v remonstrate_v as_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n as_o permit_v and_o order_v by_o he_o in_o his_o holy_a government_n of_o the_o world_n and_o execution_n of_o justice_n and_o judgement_n upon_o offender_n be_v also_o most_o malicious_o and_o hellish_o negotiate_v by_o satan_n as_o be_v most_o evident_a in_o the_o history_n of_o david_n number_v the_o people_n that_o same_o misdo_n of_o david_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o displeasure_n of_o god_n and_o to_o satan_n as_o may_v be_v see_v by_o compare_v 2_o sam._n 24._o 1._o and_o 1_o chron._n 21._o 1._o yea_o in_o that_o different_a case_n viz._n the_o transaction_n of_o our_o lord_n suffering_n satan_n enter_v into_o judas_n to_o embolden_v he_o to_o do_v what_o supreme_a wisdom_n and_o goodness_n have_v contrive_v to_o redeem_v lose_v man._n it_o be_v therefore_o nothing_o strange_a the_o holy_a angel_n and_o satan_n meet_v in_o these_o trumpet_n each_o in_o their_o place_n and_o orb_n that_o while_o the_o holy_a angel_n sound_v a_o alarm_n to_o the_o instrument_n of_o the_o divine_a vengeance_n satan_n have_v his_o contrivance_n to_o persecute_v the_o woman_n both_o by_o the_o barbarian_n and_o mahometan_n but_o beside_o this_o draconism_n of_o profess_a enemy_n to_o christianity_n there_o be_v the_o draconism_n of_o the_o beast_n or_o the_o dragon_n live_v and_o be_v worship_v in_o the_o beast_n or_o antichristianism_n begin_v by_o the_o other_o beast_n who_o be_v afterward_o call_v the_o false_a prophet_n speak_v as_o a_o dragon_n which_o be_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n in_o the_o first_o growth_n and_o his_o throne_n in_o the_o far_a growth_n when_o the_o beast_n come_v to_o his_o image_n and_o number_n and_o the_o depth_n of_o satan_n or_o his_o government_n in_o his_o ripe_a age_n and_o thus_o the_o dragon_n give_v his_o seat_n or_o throne_n and_o great_a authority_n to_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v satan_n the_o supreme_a dragon_n in_o the_o idolatrous_a and_o bloody_a cesareate_n now_o become_v residentiary_n in_o the_o beast_n and_o convey_v both_o the_o hostility_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o idolatry_n and_o the_o bloodiness_n into_o the_o beast_n and_o by_o his_o negotiation_n under_o divine_a permission_n order_v the_o very_a seat_n and_o power_n of_o the_o imperial_a cesareate_n to_o the_o beast_n as_o the_o heir_n both_o of_o his_o idolatry_n enmity_n to_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o persecutory_a tyranny_n and_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o all_o these_o in_o all_o 13._o revel_v 16._o 13._o which_o regard_v it_o may_v well_o be_v esteem_v draconism_n to_o the_o last_o and_o god_n in_o just_a indignation_n bring_v upon_o this_o serpentinism_n of_o this_o beast_n a_o counter-serpentinism_a of_o infidelism_n a_o counter_a draconism_n for_o serpens_fw-la serpentem_fw-la devorans_fw-la fit_a draco_n as_o before_o explain_v but_o yet_o the_o draconism_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v a_o diverse_a draconism_n its_o hostility_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o by_o downright_a force_n and_o resistance_n of_o open_a war_n to_o the_o name_n of_o christianity_n but_o by_o way_n of_o surprise_n out_o of_o his_o hand_n and_o hold_v as_o in_o his_o right_n and_o to_o his_o glory_n and_o yet_o in_o such_o real_a opposition_n to_o he_o that_o he_o have_v swear_v his_o kingdom_n shall_v not_o come_v till_o that_o be_v at_o the_o full_a end_n of_o time_n time_n and_o half_a time_n its_o idolatry_n be_v a_o idolatry_n as_o it_o be_v consecrate_v itself_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v therefore_o as_o in_o itself_o so_o in_o the_o prophetical_a symbol_n full_a in_o all_o its_o head_n of_o the_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n under_o this_o head_n all_o the_o former_a head_n be_v flower_v and_o as_o it_o be_v powder_v with_o the_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n all_o former_a gross_a idolatry_n and_o demonolatry_n be_v dissemble_v under_o true_a religion_n and_o heathenism_n under_o christianity_n or_o more_o true_o true_a religion_n and_o christianity_n be_v travesty_v and_o burlesque_v into_o heathenism_n and_o paganism_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o simple-idolatry_n but_o blasphemy_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o satan_n be_v but_o on_o earth_n for_o the_o beast_n hold_v the_o kingdom_n as_o in_o the_o right_n of_o christ_n christ_n thereby_o be_v still_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v on_o the_o throne_n and_o in_o that_o the_o true_a god_n holy_a angel_n and_o saint_n be_v thus_o blaspheme_v by_o antichristian_a idolatry_n and_o that_o satan_n and_o wicked_a spirit_n be_v abandon_v and_o detest_v in_o profession_n general_o though_o his_o kingdom_n have_v sometime_o portentous_o break_v out_o in_o acknowledgement_n as_o it_o be_v to_o the_o devil_n himself_o by_o some_o of_o the_o antichristian_a cheif_n his_o seat_n be_v not_o then_o as_o before_o as_o in_o a_o heaven_n he_o therefore_o in_o a_o rage_n dash_v one_o part_n of_o his_o kingdom_n against_o another_o the_o barbarian_a against_o the_o antichristian_a the_o mahometan_a against_o the_o bestian_a because_o he_o as_o a_o subtle_a computator_fw-la of_o his_o own_o time_n know_v it_o can_v be_v but_o short_a compare_v with_o above_o four_o thousand_o year_n reign_v before_o and_o that_o as_o in_o heaven_n too_o in_o the_o idolatry_n perform_v to_o devil_n viz._n fall_v angel_n or_o damn_a soul_n and_o for_o so_o great_a a_o pledge_n of_o the_o future_a fall_n of_o satan_n be_v that_o doxology_n and_o song_n of_o praise_n concert_v in_o heaven_n rev._n 12._o 10._o as_o also_o in_o prevision_n of_o the_o full_a glory_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n decree_v to_o he_o by_o god_n from_o the_o infinite_a value_n of_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o as_o a_o retribution_n for_o the_o suffering_n of_o his_o servant_n maugre_o all_o satan_n accusation_n in_o which_o the_o accuser_n himself_o be_v condemn_v and_o cast_v out_o and_o notwithstanding_o the_o succeed_a antichristianism_n and_o from_o all_o this_o arise_v a_o full_a solution_n to_o the_o second_o doubt_n and_o not_o only_o a_o solution_n but_o a_o admirable_a harmony_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a prophetical_a symbolism_n for_o when_o satan_n fall_v from_o heaven_n in_o that_o desolation_n of_o heathenism_n not_o only_o by_o the_o christian_a empire_n of_o constantine_n but_o the_o perfect_a victory_n over_o it_o by_o theodosius_n when_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n after_o the_o war_n in_o heaven_n be_v final_o cast_v down_o a_o victory_n obtain_v by_o the_o incense_n offer_v with_o the_o 3._o revel_v 8._o 3._o prayer_n of_o all_o saint_n as_o a_o signal_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o continue_v pure_a in_o the_o public_a worship_n and_o that_o then_o be_v so_o great_a expectation_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n as_o that_o doxology_n exprss_n now_o mention_v now_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o 10._o rev._n 12._o 10._o god_n come_v at_o this_o very_a moment_n to_o show_v that_o though_o god_n be_v please_v to_o account_v the_o church_n pure_a to_o the_o very_a moment_n it_o can_v in_o his_o righteous_a judgement_n be_v so_o account_v yet_o i_o say_v to_o show_v its_o purity_n be_v at_o a_o very_a low_a ebb_n and_o that_o it_o have_v long_o wane_a as_o also_o to_o show_v that_o god_n have_v design_v to_o permit_v a_o very_a different_a state_n of_o thing_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o very_a next_o news_n of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o the_o two_o wing_n western_a eastern_a of_o the_o great_a roman_a eagle_n have_v convey_v the_o church_n the_o true_a church_n into_o the_o wilderness_n that_o 14._o rev._n 12._o 14._o it_o can_v not_o be_v find_v this_o have_v be_v mention_v before_o assoon_o as_o ever_o the_o manly_a 6._o v._o 6._o birth_n be_v catch_v up_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n but_o that_o be_v only_o in_o preparation_n and_o to_o match_v with_o the_o other_o symbol_n but_o
time_n and_o therefore_o by_o the_o constant_a care_n of_o god_n in_o preserve_v a_o seed_n that_o be_v account_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o a_o generation_n and_o particular_o by_o the_o type_n of_o this_o prophecy_n we_o be_v most_o assure_v there_o must_v be_v such_o witness_n and_o such_o must_v be_v their_o testimony_n sect_n viii_o wherein_o the_o forty_o two_o month_n be_v measure_v by_o the_o exact_a rule_n of_o prophecy_n and_o find_v by_o express_a concurrency_n of_o those_o prophecy_n to_o begin_v at_o the_o cessation_n of_o the_o christian_a western_a empire_n and_o to_o end_v whenever_o the_o 1260_o day_n end_n the_o date_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n immediate_o ensue_v and_o therefore_o to_o begin_v at_o 475_o and_o by_o compare_n with_o the_o 1260_o day_n to_o end_n at_o 1697._o according_a to_o which_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o first_o beast_n and_o of_o the_o witness_n during_o the_o four_o trumpet_n viz._n from_o 475_o to_o 606_o be_v represent_v the_o point_n of_o time_n i_o be_o now_o enter_v upon_o have_v have_v a_o just_a approach_v make_v to_o it_o according_a to_o its_o importance_n which_o be_v very_o great_a i_o shall_v now_o through_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n due_o consider_v the_o most_o weighty_a sense_n of_o itself_o there_o be_v no_o line_n of_o time_n who_o bound_n be_v so_o definitive_a the_o beginning_n so_o contestable_o evident_a in_o history_n the_o end_n so_o illustrious_a as_o this_o must_v be_v to_o sense_n itself_o in_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o i_o may_v therefore_o discourse_v hereof_o most_o regular_o i_o propose_v these_o four_o head_n to_o fix_v the_o intendment_n upon_o 1._o to_o show_v that_o the_o apostle_n paul_n have_v affirm_v the_o come_n of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n or_o beast_n who_o end_n be_v according_a to_o all_o prophecy_n concern_v he_o destruction_n by_o the_o immediate_a appearance_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n at_o that_o his_o end_n have_v a_o unmoveable_a bar_n to_o his_o manifestation_n till_o his_o own_o time_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n john_n declare_v that_o bar_n to_o be_v a_o indefeisable_a succession_n of_o a_o seven_o king_n not_o come_v in_o his_o time_n to_o a_o six_o king_n then_o in_o be_v in_o his_o time_n and_o that_o seven_o king_n to_o endure_v a_o short_a time_n and_o that_o then_o the_o beast_n the_o eight_o king_n shall_v succeed_v and_o that_o he_o can_v succeed_v neither_o soon_o nor_o late_a when_o therefore_o it_o will_v appear_v that_o such_o a_o seven_o king_n do_v succeed_v the_o six_o and_o that_o that_o seven_o do_v decease_n at_o 475_o if_o it_o shall_v also_o appear_v as_o it_o will_v that_o this_o be_v the_o very_a same_o beast_n to_o who_o forty_o two_o month_n be_v determine_v it_o will_v then_o be_v most_o evident_a his_o forty_o two_o month_n must_v begin_v at_o 475._o 2._o to_o show_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n must_v last_v till_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o same_o law_n of_o succession_n can_v succeed_v and_o it_o can_v last_v no_o long_o as_o also_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n must_v succeed_v when_o that_o kingdom_n end_v and_o it_o can_v succeed_v no_o soon_o if_o then_o it_o be_v express_o say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n shall_v immediate_o succeed_v the_o 1260_o day_n and_o that_o according_a to_o this_o law_n of_o succession_n and_o the_o course_n of_o all_o prophecy_n it_o must_v also_o succeed_v the_o forty_o two_o month_n it_o than_o will_v plain_o follow_v the_o 42_o month_n and_o the_o 1260_o day_n end_v together_o 3._o to_o show_v that_o the_o 1260_o day_n must_v be_v time_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o forty_o two_o month_n must_v be_v time_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o see_v they_o must_v be_v adjust_v to_o one_o another_o as_o end_v together_o and_o lie_v both_o within_o one_o common_a womb_n of_o time_n time_n half_a time_n the_o forty_o two_o month_n by_o the_o most_o exact_a compare_n of_o lunar_a and_o solar_a time_n can_v be_v but_o 1222_o year_n and_o therefore_o beside_o all_o advantage_n of_o scripture-use_a of_o round_a number_n begin_v at_o 475_o they_o most_o exact_o and_o most_o necessary_o must_v end_v at_o 1697._o 4._o to_o show_v that_o the_o beast_n indeed_o must_v have_v every_o way_n the_o seminal_a fundamental_a nature_n of_o such_o a_o beast_n as_o he_o be_v describe_v to_o be_v at_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o his_o forty_o two_o month_n as_o the_o infant_n have_v of_o a_o man_n but_o need_v not_o nor_o can_v be_v suppose_v to_o attain_v full_a prophetical_a proportion_n till_o long_o after_o which_o time_n prophecy_n have_v also_o date_v to_o he_o by_o his_o number_n 666._o so_o that_o the_o description_n of_o the_o empire_n according_a to_o the_o four_o trumpet_n the_o administration_n of_o the_o other_o beast_n and_o the_o state_n of_o the_o witness_n may_v continue_v many_o year_n after_o as_o they_o stand_v at_o the_o forty_o two_o month_n enter_v and_o so_o prophecy_n determine_v of_o they_o to_o begin_v then_o with_o the_o first_o of_o these_o i_o find_v this_o order_n and_o head_n 1_o concert_n of_o the_o part_n of_o it_o will_v be_v most_o convictive_a and_o demonstrative_a 1._o that_o daniel_n the_o apostle_n paul_n and_o the_o apostle_n john_n speak_v all_o of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o beast_n 2._o that_o this_o one_o and_o the_o same_o beast_n have_v forty_o two_o month_n determine_v upon_o he_o as_o the_o just_a state_n of_o his_o duration_n 3._o that_o the_o apostle_n john_n have_v declare_v that_o peremptory_a positive_a law_n of_o succession_n that_o be_v the_o let_v of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o beast_n into_o his_o forty_o two_o month_n for_o the_o first_o although_o a_o multitude_n of_o proof_n from_o the_o concert_n of_o all_o prophecy_n which_o either_o have_v be_v or_o will_v be_v far_o take_v notice_n of_o may_v be_v give_v yet_o that_o which_o i_o will_v rest_v upon_o alone_a at_o this_o time_n shall_v be_v that_o most_o convictive_a one_o that_o his_o end_n be_v destruction_n by_o the_o glorious_a appearance_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o his_o eminent_a character_n be_v son_n of_o perdition_n in_o conformity_n to_o that_o apostate_n apostle_n judas_n so_o near_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n so_o the_o apostle_n john_n twice_o describe_v he_o by_o his_o go_v into_o perdition_n apoc._n 17._o v._o 8._o v._n 11._o and_o his_o destruction_n be_v solemn_o declare_v c._n 19_o and_o then_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n succeed_v c._n 20._o c._n 21._o thus_o daniel_n in_o every_o vision_n the_o great_a image_n be_v smite_v by_o the_o stone_n cut_v out_o of_o the_o mountain_n without_o hand_n grow_v to_o a_o great_a mountain_n fill_v the_o earth_n by_o a_o kingdom_n never_o end_v in_o its_o ten-toed_n foot_n part_n of_o iron_n and_o part_n of_o clay_n so_o exact_o compound_v of_o the_o beast_n out_o of_o the_o sea_n with_o his_o ten_o crown_a horn_n inseparable_o unite_v with_o his_o false_a prophetism_n a_o beast_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n revel_v 13._o the_o little_a horn_n be_v a_o beast_n deliver_v to_o the_o flame_n and_o the_o kingdom_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n give_v to_o the_o saint_n the_o king_n stand_v up_o against_o the_o prince_n of_o prince_n shall_v be_v break_v without_o hand_n at_o the_o accomplish_v to_o scatter_v the_o holy_a people_n viz._n by_o this_o beast_n as_o have_v be_v make_v to_o appear_v all_o the_o wonder_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n shall_v be_v finish_v dan._n c._n 2._o v._n 24._o etc._n etc._n compare_v with_o dan._n c._n 7._o 11._o etc._n etc._n c._n 8._o 24_o 25._o c._n 12._o 7._o the_o apostle_n paul_n 2_o thess_n 2_o 3._o etc._n etc._n style_v he_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n and_o foretell_v his_o be_v consume_v with_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o lord_n viz._n christ_n come_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o appearance_n whoever_o then_o consider_v the_o most_o notable_a and_o notorious_a destruction_n always_o affix_v to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o power_n so_o even_o in_o all_o its_o manner_n of_o description_n and_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o destruction_n as_o be_v always_o declare_v to_o issue_n and_o flow_v out_o from_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n at_o his_o come_n to_o his_o kingdom_n will_v find_v it_o must_v be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o beast_n since_o christ_n have_v but_o one_o such_o come_v and_o one_o such_o kingdom_n as_o these_o be_v describe_v to_o be_v nor_o indeed_o be_v there_o any_o more_o than_o one_o such_o beast_n so_o situate_v in_o time_n place_n and_o succession_n as_o this_o will_v appear_v to_o be_v it_o be_v in_o the_o second_o place_n to_o be_v make_v out_o that_o this_o be_v the_o same_o
to_o show_v himself_o a_o beast_n whereas_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o appear_v so_o but_o must_v remain_v in_o his_o state_n be_v not_o till_o this_o fall_n and_o after_o it_o too_o even_o till_o he_o come_v to_o his_o number_n that_o prophecy_n may_v be_v fulfil_v when_o he_o ascend_v out_o of_o this_o abyss_n and_o though_o his_o fall_n be_v but_o to_o the_o earth_n yet_o because_o instead_o of_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n he_o pretend_v to_o he_o have_v only_o the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n he_o be_v just_o say_v to_o rise_v out_o of_o it_o for_o that_o he_o ascend_v what_o be_v it_o as_o the_o apostle_n argue_v in_o a_o much_o better_a case_n but_o that_o he_o descend_v first_o 9_o ephes_n 4._o 9_o for_o see_v he_o rise_v to_o his_o power_n by_o the_o efficacy_n of_o his_o deceivableness_n of_o unrighteousness_n in_o they_o that_o perish_v by_o his_o sathanick_n sign_n and_o wonder_n by_o his_o excommunicational_a thunder_n from_o beneath_o by_o which_o he_o affright_v man_n downward_o and_o that_o much_o of_o his_o potentacy_n lie_v in_o the_o management_n of_o a_o false_a hell_n of_o his_o own_o sound_n it_o be_v very_o proper_a to_o he_o to_o ascend_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n he_o assume_v be_v very_o ominous_a to_o he_o for_o what_o he_o call_v key_n be_v this_o one_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o so_o in_o just_a derision_n of_o he_o he_o carry_v this_o device_n in_o prophecy_n the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n be_v give_v he_o i_o confess_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v the_o first_o in_o this_o assumption_n the_o emulation_n of_o which_o move_v gregory_n it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v as_o a_o low_a cause_n to_o so_o high_a a_o exclamation_n but_o though_o he_o be_v first_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o to_o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o abyss_n in_o supremacy_n for_o prophecy_n see_v not_o as_o man_n see_v by_o degree_n and_o as_o in_o parcel_n but_o at_o once_o it_o therefore_o call_v he_o that_o fall_v star_n alone_o who_o be_v to_o have_v this_o key_n although_o the_o other_o be_v a_o fall_a star_n also_o and_o speak_v as_o a_o dragon_n he_o be_v then_o and_o he_o alone_o he_o that_o have_v under_o satan_n the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o though_o a_o angel_n be_v call_v afterward_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n who_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o its_o due_a place_n very_o diverse_a from_o this_o star_n who_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v a_o better_a right_n to_o this_o key_n we_o shall_v yet_o find_v he_o be_v only_o a_o warlike_a king_n of_o the_o locust_n under_o the_o title_n of_o a_o prophet_n the_o false_a prophet_n mahomet_n but_o be_v not_o can_v not_o be_v this_o star_n who_o fall_n must_v be_v from_o heaven_n perpetual_a even_o as_o his_o aspire_a pretension_n to_o heaven_n be_v so_o continual_a as_o shall_v be_v further_o declare_v as_o one_o who_o once_o have_v a_o fixation_n in_o heaven_n which_o mahomet_n never_o have_v he_o that_o ascend_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n be_v he_o that_o open_v it_o and_o let_v out_o the_o smoke_n he_o open_v it_o he_o let_v out_o the_o smoke_n out_o of_o which_o the_o locust_n come_v but_o against_o his_o own_o intention_n he_o intend_v himself_o to_o ride_v in_o this_o cloud_n as_o in_o a_o infernal_a chariot_n alone_o but_o with_o the_o smoke_n satan_n also_o ascend_v and_o become_v a_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n in_o the_o king_n of_o the_o locust_n who_o be_v the_o flood_n out_o of_o his_o mouth_n propagate_a his_o kingdom_n by_o both_o the_o star_n and_o by_o the_o king_n of_o the_o locust_n the_o latter_a of_o which_o be_v principal_o a_o great_a judgement_n of_o god_n on_o the_o antichristian_a star_n as_o shall_v be_v show_v at_o large_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o find_v the_o other_o beast_n minister_a to_o this_o delivery_n of_o the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n under_o the_o decree_n and_o judicial_a ordination_n of_o god_n for_o they_o make_v trial_n for_o he_o of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o lamblike_a horn_n join_v with_o the_o draconick_a idolatry_n and_o persecution_n and_o so_o exercise_v the_o power_n of_o the_o first_o beast_n before_o he_o while_o he_o as_o one_o and_o the_o chief_a 13._o revel_v 13._o among_o they_o look_v on_o they_o assay_v the_o call_a fire_n from_o heaven_n and_o work_v lie_a miracle_n in_o his_o sight_n to_o establish_v the_o grandeur_n of_o false_a prophecy_n they_o stir_v up_o all_o to_o worship_v the_o first_o beast_n viz._n the_o roman_a idolatrous_a supremacy_n and_o to_o make_v a_o image_n of_o universality_n to_o it_o in_o such_o a_o roman_n catholic_n supremacy_n as_o of_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n and_o even_o the_o eastern_a horn_n that_o aspire_v for_o itself_o above_o this_o beast_n yet_o by_o approve_v the_o idea_n by_o make_v the_o experiment_n by_o assume_v the_o title_n provoke_v and_o enkindle_v the_o ambition_n of_o he_o who_o by_o the_o divine_a decree_n have_v the_o permission_n get_v the_o possession_n and_o have_v for_o many_o age_n wedge_v himself_o fast_o into_o it_o and_o leave_v the_o other_o horn_n leisure_n only_o to_o be_v angry_a at_o his_o defeat_n while_o his_o vain_a claim_n justify_v the_o thing_n as_o lawful_a and_o desirable_a and_o therefore_o give_v the_o occasion_n to_o the_o high_a sound_a voice_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a and_o it_o be_v very_o observable_a on_o this_o very_a account_n the_o divine_a justice_n fall_v all_o along_o severe_o upon_o the_o eastern_a empire_n and_o patriarchate_o by_o the_o two_o first_o woe-trumpet_n especial_o at_o the_o take_n of_o constantinople_n and_o to_o this_o day_n lie_v heavy_a upon_o they_o so_o that_o as_o the_o grecian_a emperor_n give_v first_o to_o the_o constantinopolitan_a patriarch_n and_o then_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n this_o antichristian_a universality_n so_o most_o distinct_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v very_o dreadful_a upon_o both_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o whole_a hierarchy_n as_o so_o antichristianize_a and_o so_o it_o continue_v and_o will_v so_o far_o conjoin_v they_o in_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o false_a prophet_n as_o they_o shall_v not_o divorce_v themselves_o from_o they_o by_o repentance_n for_o this_o prophecy_n look_v upon_o both_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a hierarchy_n as_o one_o and_o the_o same_o beast_n with_o two_o horn_n under_o the_o same_o grand_a beast_n and_o their_o people_n as_o one_o body_n of_o man_n gentile_n inhabitant_n of_o the_o antichristian_a earth_n and_o sea_n and_o as_o two_o wing_n of_o the_o same_o eagle_n and_o they_o all_o along_o be_v both_o punish_v in_o and_o with_o one_o another_o it_o be_v not_o the_o lesser_a controversy_n among_o themselves_o concern_v primacy_n or_o some_o other_o matter_n that_o can_v dissolve_v the_o antichristian_a union_n wherein_o this_o prophecy_n leave_v they_o it_o must_v be_v sincere_a repentance_n turn_v from_o idolatry_n superstition_n enmity_n to_o the_o pure_a religion_n and_o from_o pride_n and_o tyranny_n enjoy_v only_o by_o one_o one_o of_o the_o horn_n indeed_o for_o many_o year_n as_o most_o near_o ally_v to_o the_o grand_a beast_n but_o affect_v by_o both_o that_o must_v make_v that_o wall_n of_o partition_n that_o have_v not_o yet_o be_v make_v between_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a antichristian_o or_o between_o any_o part_n of_o each_o and_o their_o antichristianism_n in_o the_o interim_n from_o this_o very_a time_n we_o be_v upon_o the_o beast_n fall_v as_o a_o star_n to_o the_o antichristian_a earth_n receive_v as_o latin_a that_o be_v strict_o roman_a the_o universality_n of_o both_o east_n and_o west_n as_o be_v always_o design_v by_o god_n to_o be_v so_o give_v or_o permit_v and_o so_o by_o degree_n enlighten_v rome_n when_o all_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o day_n and_o even_o of_o the_o night_n be_v smite_v go_v down_o and_o set_v and_o now_o he_o begin_v to_o carry_v the_o woman_n on_o high_a even_o at_o his_o first_o ascend_v and_o so_o gradual_o as_o he_o ascend_v to_o his_o number_n and_o hereby_o the_o fall_a star_n appear_v to_o be_v the_o same_o beast_n that_o rise_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n to_o war_n with_o the_o witness_n and_o therefore_o must_v be_v the_o same_o that_o war_n with_o the_o saint_n who_o be_v the_o witness_n and_o who_o be_v lead_v captive_a or_o take_v by_o the_o lamb_n and_o his_o army_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o true_a and_o go_v into_o perdition_n that_o be_v be_v cast_v into_o the_o lake_n and_o so_o the_o same_o throughout_o and_o when_o he_o be_v so_o cast_v into_o the_o lake_n a_o angel_n of_o another_o character_n do_v not_o fall_v but_o descend_v from_o heaven_n
the_o content_n of_o this_o treatise_n be_v give_v in_o table_n annex_v to_o each_o part._n 1_o part_n before_o the_o apostasy_n in_o 10_o section_n 2_o part_n during_o the_o apostasy_n to_o the_o last_o end_n in_o 16_o section_n a_o calendar_n of_o the_o whole_a time_n contain_v in_o scripture_n ennoble_v with_o the_o event_n of_o each_o part_n of_o time_n distinguish_v by_o the_o true_a year_n of_o the_o world_n according_a to_o scripture_n the_o year_n before_o christ_n till_o the_o incarnation_n than_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o resurrection_n to_o all_o which_o be_v apply_v the_o julian_n period_n  _fw-fr year_n of_o the_o world_n year_n before_o christ_n year_n of_o the_o resur_n julian_n period_n to_o the_o perfect_a creation_n and_o first_o sabbatism_n 1_o 3987_o  _fw-fr 764_o 765_o to_o the_o flood_n contain_v the_o history_n of_o abel_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o first_o roll_n of_o the_o giant_n the_o translation_n of_o enoch_n the_o seven_o from_o adam_n the_o ark_n prepare_v by_o noah_n a_o eight_o and_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o old_a world_n 1656_o 2331_o  _fw-fr 2420_o to_o terah_n death_n contain_v the_o history_n of_o shem_n or_o melchisedeck_v as_o he_o be_v after_o know_v to_o be_v with_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o 2_o d._n roll_v of_o babel_n the_o space_n of_o 427_o year_n 2083_o 1904_o  _fw-fr 2847_o to_o the_o go_v out_o of_o egypt_n contain_v the_o history_n of_o the_o sojourn_v of_o abraham_n and_o his_o seed_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o sodom_n and_o the_o egyptian_a bondage_n and_o deliverance_n the_o space_n of_o 430_o year_n 2513_o 1474_o  _fw-fr 3277_o to_o the_o build_n of_o the_o temple_n begin_v contain_v the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o testimony_n the_o conquest_n of_o canaan_n the_o time_n of_o the_o judge_n of_o david_n the_o space_n of_o 480_o year_n 2993_o 994_o  _fw-fr 3757_o to_o solomon_n death_n contain_v the_o building_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o his_o illustrious_a reign_n his_o fall_n and_o repentance_n 36_o year_n 3029_o 958_o  _fw-fr 3793_o to_o ezekiel_n vision_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n contain_v the_o history_n of_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n the_o history_n of_o the_o defection_n of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n and_o their_o king_n of_o the_o two_o great_a witness_n elijah_n and_o elisha_n the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o temple_n the_o captivity_n by_o nabuchadnezzar_n the_o space_n of_o 390_o year_n 3419_o 568_o  _fw-fr 4183_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o captivity_n contain_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o captivity_n nebuchadnezzar_n victory_n over_o egypt_n ezek._n 29._o 17._o and_o babylon_n fall_n the_o space_n of_o 40_o year_n 3459_o 528_o  _fw-fr 4223_o from_o cyrus_n to_o the_o sanctuary_n cleanse_v and_o to_o the_o king_n of_o fierce_a countenance_n and_o understanding_n dark_a sentence_n break_v without_o hand_n a_o line_n of_o 2300_o evening_n and_o morning_n or_o 2300_o year_n with_o its_o collateral_a line_n which_o now_o follow_v be_v also_o inclusive_a of_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n take_v away_o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr from_o the_o word_n first_o go_v forth_o by_o cyrus_n to_o its_o complete_a be_v go_v forth_o by_o darius_n hystaspis_n and_o ultimate_o at_o artaxerxes_n longimanus_n seven_o year_n the_o space_n of_o 75_o year_n 3534_o 453_o  _fw-fr 4298_o from_o thence_o to_o the_o incarnation_n contain_v antiochus_n tyranny_n and_o other_o trouble_n the_o space_n of_o 453_o year_n 3987_o 1_o yea._n of_o christ_n  _fw-fr 4751_o to_o the_o resurrection_n contain_v the_o birth_n private_a life_n public_a ministry_n and_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o his_o resurrection_n 33_o year_n 4020_o 33_o 1_o 4784_o to_o alexander_n severus_n death_n the_o balance_n of_o time_n between_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o apostasy_n contain_v the_o history_n of_o the_o universal_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n the_o space_n of_o 202_o year_n 4222_o 235_o 202_o 4986_o to_o the_o apostasy_n or_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 1260_o day_n time_n day_n or_o time_n time_n half_a time_n contain_v a_o vindication_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o most_o rational_a apology_n constant_a suffering_n of_o christian_n till_o the_o christian_a empire_n and_o then_o the_o christian_a empire_n till_o the_o take_n away_o the_o daily_a or_o pure_a public_a worship_n the_o space_n of_o 202_o year_n 4424_o 437_o 404_o 5108_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o time_n and_o begin_v of_o the_o second_o or_o first_o of_o the_o two_o time_n during_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o western_a empire_n contain_v the_o rise_n of_o the_o beast_n at_o 475_o his_o fall_n as_o a_o star_n from_o heaven_n at_o 606_o his_o manly_a age_n at_o 666_o from_o his_o conception_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 59_o to_o that_o manly_a age_n 725_o of_o the_o space_n of_o 360_o year_n 4784_o 797_o 764_o 5468_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o time_n or_o first_o of_o the_o two_o time_n and_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o three_o time_n contain_v the_o range_v of_o the_o mahometan_a locust_n or_o saraoen_n and_o the_o beast_n promotion_n to_o a_o settle_a age_n or_o of_o consistency_n the_o space_n of_o 360_o year_n more_o 5144_o 1157_o 1124_o 5828_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o three_o or_o second_o of_o the_o two_o time_n to_o the_o half-time_n contain_v the_o cavalcade_n of_o the_o turkish_a horseman_n and_o the_o beast_n decline_v age_n the_o space_n of_o 360_o year_n more_o 5504_o 1517_o 1484_o 6188_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o half-time_n or_o to_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n contain_v the_o state_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o since_o to_o the_o expectation_n of_o the_o witness_n rise_v about_o 1697_o ten_o year_n hence_o the_o space_n of_o 180_o year_n 5684_o 1697_o 1664_o 6368_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o last_o seventy_o five_o year_n of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n contain_v the_o seven_o voice_n and_o the_o seven_o vial_n and_o end_v in_o it_o be_v do_v it_o be_v do_v at_o 1772._o 5759_o 1772_o 1739_o 6443_o after_o this_o follow_v new_a time_n or_o the_o sabbatism_n of_o the_o creation_n viz._n the_o cubical_a thousand_o year_n of_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr a_fw-la explication_n of_o daniel_n grand_a line_n of_o time_n or_o of_o his_o 2300_o evening_n and_o morning_n as_o give_v in_o his_o four_o last_o chapter_n in_o these_o follow_a section_n sect_n i._o of_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o daily_o take_v away_o and_o therein_o of_o the_o 2300_o eu._n morn_n or_o the_o vision_n call_v the_o vision_n of_o the_o eu._n morn_n in_o general_n on_o dan._n chap._n 8._o the_o vision_n of_o the_o 2300_o evening_n and_o morning_n date_n most_o exact_o and_o precise_o the_o time_n from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o persian_a monarchy_n or_o the_o first_o of_o cyrus_n to_o the_o cleanse_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n at_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n and_o the_o break_n of_o antichrist_n without_o hand_n or_o by_o the_o stone_n cut_v out_o of_o the_o mountain_n without_o hand_n at_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n dan._n 8._o 14._o 25._o the_o order_n of_o the_o former_a vision_n due_o consider_v give_v great_a light_n to_o this_o for_o first_o there_o be_v in_o the_o course_n of_o ezekiel_n vision_n a_o long_a allotment_n of_o time_n till_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n and_o a_o peculiar_a sanction_n of_o the_o prophetical_a cypher_n of_o time_n or_o of_o a_o day_n for_o a_o year_n ezek._n 4._o 6._o that_o give_v full_a scope_n ae_v room_n to_o those_o monarchy_n to_o run_v their_o time_n as_o in_o the_o image_n and_o the_o four_o beast_n in_o daniel_n two_o precedent_a vision_n 〈◊〉_d 2._o c._n 7._o the_o former_a of_o those_o two_o or_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o image_n give_v only_o a_o general_a appearance_n of_o so_o many_o monarchy_n or_o kingdom_n or_o rather_o of_o a_o monarchy_n universal_a shift_v from_o one_o people_n and_o their_o kingdom_n to_o another_o and_o all_o adverse_a to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n for_o that_o can_v not_o appear_v while_o they_o be_v in_o play_n from_o hence_o arise_v such_o a_o line_n of_o time_n as_o necessary_o be_v require_v for_o four_o monarchy_n to_o display_v themselves_o but_o because_o they_o may_v be_v short_a or_o long_o in_o their_o duration_n they_o give_v no_o certain_a measure_n only_o as_o that_o there_o be_v no_o history_n of_o action_n elder_a than_o moses_n of_o the_o creation_n appear_v in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o weight_n against_o the_o world_n eternity_n so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o daily_a matter_n of_o history_n arise_v from_o many_o other_o king_n and_o kingdom_n and_o particular_o of_o the_o roman_n assure_v we_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v because_o while_o that_o last_v the_o grand_a foretold_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n can_v
the_o great_a attendance_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n be_v to_o the_o line_n of_o time_n which_o it_o join_v to_o the_o jewish_a line_n that_o go_v before_o and_o particular_o to_o ezekiel_n 430_o day_n or_o year_n which_o just_o comprehend_v and_o end_v with_o the_o babylonish_n monarchy_n which_o monarchy_n in_o a_o real_a calendar_n i_o have_v before_o more_o than_o once_o say_v begin_v the_o gentile_n time_n during_o which_o jerusalem_n lie_v and_o be_v to_o lie_v under_o foot_n but_o just_a here_o the_o babylonish_n monarchy_n be_v no_o far_o give_v in_o type_n although_o it_o remain_v in_o the_o former_a type_n to_o the_o last_o but_o the_o future_a line_n of_o time_n be_v give_v in_o 2300_o evening_n morning_n from_o the_o persian_a monarchy_n beginning_n and_o this_o latter_a can_v not_o have_v be_v give_v with_o prophetic_a secrecy_n and_o yet_o also_o without_o confusion_n if_o the_o former_a have_v not_o be_v omit_v who_o time_n give_v before_o can_v not_o enter_v into_o this_o but_o it_o must_v confound_v time_n every_o way_n but_o thus_o this_o principal_a line_n reach_v from_o literal_a babylon_n fall_v to_o mystical_a babylon_n fall_v from_o literal_a jerusalem_n near_o to_o be_v rebuilt_a with_o its_o temple_n to_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n which_o much_o adorn_v this_o line_n of_o time_n and_o set_v these_o two_o just_a even_o from_o point_n to_o point_v it_o be_v true_a the_o four_o as_o universal_a monarchy_n be_v together_o the_o great_a canale_n of_o time_n till_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n whatever_o great_a state_n or_o kingdom_n be_v coexistent_a with_o they_o or_o any_o of_o they_o at_o any_o time_n or_o have_v arisen_a since_o do_v not_o mingle_v with_o this_o stream_n which_o run_v straight_o on_o to_o this_o end_n nor_o be_v any_o of_o themselves_o adopt_v into_o it_o soon_o than_o the_o just_a time_n of_o their_o succession_n into_o universal_a monarchy_n nor_o do_v they_o abide_v any_o long_o in_o it_o as_o a_o calendar_n of_o time_n after_o once_o they_o be_v fall_v from_o that_o universal_a monarchy_n each_o successive_a monarchy_n subdue_a the_o precedent_n take_v it_o up_o and_o in_o the_o roman_a monarchy_n the_o dragon_n resign_v his_o seat_n and_o power_n to_o the_o beast_n the_o imperial_a to_o the_o antichristian_a without_o any_o conquest_n to_o who_o as_o the_o seven_o roman_a head_n and_o universal_a king_n the_o ten_o king_n give_v their_o power_n the_o four_o beast_n still_o survive_v different_o from_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o succession_n for_o each_o succession_n be_v by_o force_n beside_o this_o so_o in_o this_o the_o whole_a line_n be_v continue_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o if_o any_o of_o these_o kingdom_n fall_v in_o its_o order_n of_o succession_n and_o become_v great_a afterward_o on_o another_o bottom_n as_o the_o persian_a subdue_v by_o the_o grecian_a the_o grecian_a by_o the_o roman_a the_o one_o afterward_o rise_v in_o its_o own_o name_n the_o other_o in_o mahomet_n yet_o they_o disturb_v not_o this_o order_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o enter_v anew_o into_o this_o calendar_n of_o time_n and_o because_o of_o this_o real_a substantial_a calendar_n of_o time_n in_o these_o monarchy_n the_o first_o act_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v record_v by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n to_o be_v the_o put_v down_o all_o rule_n authority_n ●6_n 1_o cor._n 15._o ●6_n and_o power_n refer_v especial_o to_o these_o four_o monarchy_n the_o great_a emblem_n of_o such_o rule_n and_o power_n viz._n when_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n rev._n 11._o 15._o then_o all_o this_o calendar_n of_o rule_n and_o power_n be_v at_o a_o end_n that_o therefore_o which_o be_v most_o considerable_a in_o the_o explanation_n of_o this_o course_n of_o time_n far_o to_o we_o be_v that_o whereas_o the_o gentile_n time_n viz._n this_o substantial_a calendar_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n begin_v in_o the_o babylonian_a so_o long_o as_o that_o calendar_n be_v in_o present_v the_o babylonian_a be_v never_o omit_v but_o be_v the_o capital_a in_o it_o but_o when_o it_o come_v to_o this_o numeral_a line_n or_o the_o 2300_o eu._n mor._n it_o be_v then_o omit_v because_o the_o numeral_a line_n run_v not_o upon_o any_o revolution_n of_o these_o monarchy_n but_o upon_o some_o eminent_a providence_n of_o god_n towards_o his_o church_n either_o of_o mercy_n towards_o it_o or_o its_o suffering_n under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o some_o of_o these_o monarchy_n especial_o the_o bestian_a as_o will_v be_v see_v all_o along_o which_o be_v a_o very_a clear_a reason_n why_o the_o babylonian_a be_v first_o so_o chief_a in_o the_o calendar_n of_o the_o monarchy_n for_o that_o be_v one_o and_o the_o first_o it_o must_v be_v so_o in_o the_o real_a but_o when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o numeral_a it_o be_v of_o no_o use_n because_o it_o have_v be_v give_v in_o the_o last_o numeral_a line_n as_o then_o exist_v it_o be_v not_o give_v in_o the_o follow_a numeral_a because_o it_o be_v then_o past_a and_o will_v disorder_v the_o account_n the_o real_a calendar_n be_v take_v from_o each_o universal_a monarchy_n that_o have_v the_o jew_n particular_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n in_o subjection_n and_o so_o oppress_v christ_n kingdom_n here_o the_o babylonian_a be_v the_o first_o the_o persian_a the_o second_v the_o grecian_a the_o three_o the_o four_o the_o roman_a under_o which_o as_o imperial_a first_o the_o jew_n be_v desolate_v the_o manly_a birth_n or_o christ_n as_o king_n be_v watch_v as_o by_o a_o dragon_n christian_n lay_v as_o martyr_v under_o the_o altar_n and_o then_o under_o it_o as_o antichristian_a lie_v subdue_v the_o spiritual_a israel_n till_o both_o that_o and_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n be_v restore_v by_o christ_n kingdom_n so_o these_o be_v the_o time_n of_o the_o gentile_n before_o which_o neither_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n nor_o the_o apostolical_a church_n be_v full_o restore_v or_o can_v be_v from_o all_o which_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o though_o the_o vision_n be_v not_o date_v from_o the_o persian_a monarchy_n as_o if_o it_o be_v give_v for_o the_o persian_a monarchy_n sake_n yet_o the_o 2300_o eu._n morn_n begin_v just_a when_o that_o begin_v and_o very_o fit_o because_o the_o persian_a cyrus_n find_v the_o temple_n fall_v and_o the_o daily_a service_n of_o the_o jew_n take_v away_o and_o proclaim_v the_o restoration_n which_o make_v the_o date_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v the_o second_o proposition_n follow_v viz._n that_o the_o twenty_o 2._o propos_fw-fr 2._o three_o hundred_o day_n of_o this_o vision_n as_o also_o the_o thing_n contain_v in_o it_o run_v down_o and_o reach_v to_o the_o end_n of_o all_o or_o to_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o christ._n of_o this_o we_o have_v many_o argument_n in_o the_o vision_n itself_o which_o have_v brief_o direct_v first_o unto_o i_o will_v endeavour_v by_o far_a strong_a proof_n from_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o prophecy_n to_o establish_v it_o every_o vision_n of_o daniel_n except_o the_o follow_a vision_n of_o the_o argu._n 1_o seventy_o week_n which_o have_v the_o high_a and_o noble_a subject_n of_o the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n make_v a_o end_n of_o sin_n and_o bring_v in_o everlasting_a righteousness_n but_o else_o every_o vision_n run_v express_o to_o the_o last_o end_n and_o kingdom_n of_o christ._n and_o whether_o even_o that_o do_v not_o after_o the_o desolation_n of_o judaisme_n give_v a_o prospect_n of_o their_o restoration_n also_o signify_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o until_o the_o consummation_n until_o which_o their_o desolation_n be_v to_o last_v and_o no_o long_o i_o leave_v to_o the_o learned_a however_o it_o certain_o bear_v its_o part_n in_o carry_v on_o time_n to_o that_o end_n but_o the_o very_a shape_n and_o design_n of_o all_o the_o other_o vision_n be_v most_o apparent_o that_o end_n and_o therefore_o i_o conclude_v of_o this_o also_o the_o often_o mention_v of_o the_o end_n three_o time_n the_o vision_n and_o argu._n 2_o the_o end_n be_v conjoin_v at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o end_n the_o vision_n shall_v 8._o dan._n 8._o be_v and_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o vision_n be_v to_o make_v daniel_n know_v what_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o last_o end_n of_o the_o indignation_n and_o at_o the_o time_n appoint_v the_o end_n shall_v be_v now_o what_o end_n can_v be_v so_o absolute_a as_o to_o be_v understand_v by_o its_o name_n only_o except_o that_o end_v of_o christ_n kingdom_n so_o well_o know_v by_o the_o former_a vision_n and_o by_o the_o follow_a vision_n chap._n 11._o v._n 27._o when_o because_o of_o this_o end_n to_o which_o every_o thing_n have_v lead_v and_o make_v no_o
story_n betwixt_o these_o vision_n and_o the_o messiah_n but_o the_o so_o strange_a the_o so_o unaccountable_a foul_a longsome_a apostasy_n of_o antichrist_n lie_v so_o long_o on_o the_o so_o excellent_a religion_n of_o the_o gospel_n eclipse_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n full_a of_o all_o the_o most_o pernicious_a effect_n be_v deserve_o astonish_a to_o angel_n and_o man_n and_o captivate_v the_o many_o the_o wise_a and_o the_o great_a against_o all_o scripture_n reason_n and_o even_o common_a sense_n and_o be_v it_o not_o for_o that_o captivation_n as_o unworthy_a confutation_n as_o the_o koran_n the_o very_a history_n of_o antiochus_n as_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o antichrist_n be_v only_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o antichristian_a canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o only_o typical_o give_v in_o daniel_n prophecy_n show_v it_o of_o no_o great_a account_n with_o god_n the_o time_n the_o understanding_n dark_a sentence_n the_o grow_a adhere_v not_o by_o his_o own_o power_n be_v no_o way_n applicable_a to_o any_o historical_a memoir_n of_o antiochus_n a_o prince_n furious_a active_a enterprise_v at_o the_o head_n of_o his_o warlike_a affair_n last_o the_o very_a eu._n mor._n of_o this_o line_n a_o manner_n of_o speech_n not_o use_v in_o scripture_n from_o the_o very_a first_o of_o genesis_n till_o now_o lead_v we_o to_o the_o new_a creation_n to_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o bright_a morning_n star_n display_v of_o his_o beam_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n even_o as_o day_n compound_v of_o eu._n and_o mor._n so_o these_o eu._n mor._n with_o equal_a fitness_n and_o naturalness_n sustain_v the_o prophetical_a type_n of_o time_n day_n for_o year_n of_o all_o which_o let_v this_o be_v the_o applicatory_a remark_n to_o lead_v remark_n remark_n we_o with_o confidence_n assurance_n due_a preparation_n faith_n prayer_n and_o earnest_a desire_n to_o he_o who_o say_v behold_v i_o make_v all_o thing_n new_a and_o immediate_o after_o as_o it_o be_v in_o remembrance_n 5._o dan._n 8._o 26._o compare_v with_o rev._n 21._o 5._o of_o his_o declarative_n amen_o upon_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o eu._n and_o mor._n it_o be_v true_a impose_v his_o perfectory_n finitive_a amen_o when_o he_o say_v no_o long_o seal_n but_o write_v in_o capital_a letter_n these_o say_n be_v faithful_a and_o true_a whoso_o then_o by_o follow_v the_o lamb_n whithersoever_o he_o go_v overcome_v shall_v inherit_v all_o thing_n christ_n will_v be_v his_o father_n he_o shall_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o of_o christ._n but_o the_o fearful_a who_o be_v fright_v into_o antichristian_a cympliance_n the_o abominable_a etc._n etc._n sink_v down_o into_o the_o defilement_n of_o all_o sort_n proper_a to_o the_o foul_a state_n falshood_n and_o the_o great_a lie_n of_o the_o apostasy_n shall_v have_v their_o part_n in_o the_o lake_n that_o burn_v with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n where_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o false_a prophet_n be_v let_v we_o then_o live_v by_o faith_n and_o not_o draw_v back_o for_o he_o that_o shall_v come_v will_v come_v and_o will_v not_o tarry_v even_o so_o come_v lord_n jesus_n come_v quick_o amen_n sect_n iii_o in_o which_o a_o line_n of_o seventy_o five_o year_n precedent_n to_o the_o seventy_o week_n be_v assert_v and_o endeavour_v to_o be_v prove_v dan._n 9_o have_v in_o the_o precedent_a section_n establish_v the_o grand_a line_n of_o 2300_o eu._n mor._n and_o their_o determination_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n i_o now_o proceed_v to_o the_o distribution_n of_o this_o line_n and_o first_o to_o the_o line_n that_o must_v however_o subordinate_a and_o collateral_a yet_o set_v out_o at_o the_o very_a same_o instant_n with_o the_o 2300_o eu._n mor._n and_o that_o be_v of_o the_o word_n go_v forth_o now_o of_o this_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a by_o scripture_n that_o it_o must_v begin_v at_o the_o persian_a monarchy_n or_o the_o monarchy_n of_o cyrus_n for_o at_o darius_n the_o mede_n to_o who_o scripture_n allow_v only_o one_o 9_o dan._n 9_o year_n it_o do_v not_o begin_v for_o in_o that_o year_n daniel_n pray_v and_o have_v this_o vision_n in_o return_n of_o prayer_n as_o appear_v enough_o throughout_o this_o chap._n at_o cyrus_n first_o year_n it_o do_v begin_v for_o so_o ezra_n assure_v we_o chap._n 1._o for_o must_v not_o that_o most_o necessary_o be_v the_o go_v forth_o of_o the_o word_n when_o cyrus_n send_v forth_o his_o proclamation_n and_o put_v it_o in_o write_v v._o 1_o 2._o &_o c_o but_o although_o the_o word_n begin_v here_o to_o go_v forth_o yet_o it_o be_v most_o manifest_a it_o do_v not_o here_o attain_v its_o effect_n for_o than_o will_v it_o not_o have_v rest_v and_o cease_v to_o go_v forth_o any_o far_a but_o we_o find_v it_o stop_v after_o the_o altar_n set_v up_o and_o the_o foundation_n lay_v all_o the_o reign_n of_o ahasuerus_n and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o artaxerxes_n which_o two_o as_o we_o shall_v after_o reason_n must_v be_v cambyses_n 24._o ezra_n c._n 4._o 24._o the_o son_n of_o cyrus_n and_o the_o counterfeit_n smerdis_n so_o that_o it_o as_o plain_o go_v forth_o again_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o darius_n know_v in_o common_a history_n by_o the_o name_n of_o darius_n hystaspis_n after_o that_o although_o it_o come_v much_o near_o its_o perfection_n yet_o it_o be_v contradict_v in_o the_o day_n of_o xerxes_n ahasuerus_n by_o so_o severe_a a_o decree_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o jew_n throughout_o all_o the_o province_n so_o that_o artaxerxes_n call_v by_o historian_n longimanus_fw-la 8._o esth_n 3._o 8._o illustrate_v his_o seven_o year_n with_o the_o word_n complete_o go_v forth_o the_o echo_n of_o which_o for_o the_o build_n of_o the_o wall_n be_v in_o his_o twenty_o and_o in_o his_o thirty_o second_o the_o quaver_n of_o that_o same_o word_n in_o leave_n to_o nehemiah_n to_o restore_v jerusalem_n into_o its_o perfect_a order_n and_o polity_n which_o plain_o argue_v the_o word_n go_v forth_o in_o his_o seven_o year_n now_o although_o the_o great_a perplexity_n of_o the_o persian_a chronology_n be_v no_o way_n to_o my_o main_a intention_n to_o be_v concern_v in_o yet_o the_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o the_o go_v forth_o of_o the_o word_n must_v take_v up_o such_o a_o time_n as_o 75_o year_n be_v of_o very_o deep_a behoof_n in_o that_o intention_n both_o as_o it_o give_v great_a assurance_n to_o the_o former_a principal_a line_n of_o 2300_o year_n show_v how_o seventy_o five_o of_o they_o be_v spend_v and_o also_o as_o it_o will_v inlighten_v some_o concernment_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n to_o which_o all_o account_n of_o time_n tend_v upon_o this_o whole_a consideration_n i_o shall_v endeavour_v the_o proof_n of_o such_o a_o space_n imply_v in_o the_o word_n go_v forth_o and_o first_o i_o shall_v observe_v that_o which_o i_o do_v not_o look_v upon_o so_o considerable_a as_o to_o call_v it_o a_o argument_n the_o very_a phrase_n of_o go_v forth_o imply_v some_o protract_a and_o prolong_v go_v 2._o mich._n 5_o 2._o forth_o by_o the_o word_n the_o same_o word_n be_v use_v of_o he_o who_o go_n forth_o be_v from_o everlasting_a but_o more_o enforce_o to_o press_v this_o i_o thus_o argue_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o spare_v any_o of_o those_o great_a decree_n we_o have_v argu._n 1_o so_o special_o record_v ezra_n 1._o c._n 1._o c._n 6._o c._n 7._o from_o the_o word_n go_v forth_o not_o the_o first_o because_o it_o be_v the_o first_o so_o much_o foretell_v of_o former_o by_o the_o prophet_n esay_n of_o so_o famous_a memory_n and_o that_o first_o break_v the_o bond_n of_o the_o jewish_a captivity_n who_o can_v with_o possible_a reason_n suppose_v that_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o the_o word_n go_v forth_o in_o which_o prophecy_n glory_v so_o long_o beforehand_o that_o be_v even_o point_v upon_o by_o gabriel_n and_o from_o which_o the_o other_o decree_n be_v derive_v as_o be_v express_o mention_v in_o darius_n decree_n ezra_n c._n 6._o compare_v with_o dan._n 9_o 21_o nor_o can_v the_o second_o decree_n of_o darius_n be_v deny_v a_o place_n in_o it_o which_o so_o unite_v itself_o with_o cyrus_n decree_n that_o if_o either_o be_v the_o word_n go_v forth_o both_o must_v be_v so_o for_o though_o they_o be_v distant_a in_o time_n they_o be_v one_o in_o substance_n and_o by_o it_o the_o temple_n be_v build_v and_o least_o of_o all_o can_v the_o decree_n of_o artaxerxes_n in_o his_o seven_o 7._o ezra_n 7._o year_n be_v impeach_v as_o to_o this_o right_n for_o it_o be_v the_o perfective_a decree_n so_o liberal_a and_o ample_a with_o such_o peculiarity_n in_o it_o all_o along_o that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n in_o the_o whole_a but_o yield_v a_o argument_n it_o excel_v all_o that_o go_v before_o and_o leave_v no_o room_n for_o any_o to_o come_v after_o it_o
he_o be_v far_o justify_v that_o be_v clear_v from_o the_o imputation_n lay_v upon_o he_o by_o the_o apostasy_n and_o let_v he_o far_o also_o vindicate_v and_o justify_v himself_o from_o it_o by_o a_o ministration_n of_o the_o vial_n on_o the_o beast_n and_o double_v to_o the_o infamous_a woman_n the_o cup_n she_o have_v give_v and_o thereby_o make_v preparation_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n thus_o be_v that_o great_a time_n in_o its_o curious_a emblematism_n in_o prophecy_n c._n 22._o 11._o compare_v with_o rev._n c._n 15._o c._n 18._o v._n 6._o and_o because_o all_o this_o shall_v by_o the_o will_n of_o christ_n be_v yet_o draw_v out_o more_o definitive_o he_o be_v please_v to_o add_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o daily_a or_o continual_a in_o the_o very_a same_o only_a word_n tammith_n no_o where_n apply_v alone_o to_o sacrifice_n from_o that_o take_v away_o by_o the_o apostasy_n i_o say_v be_v give_v exact_o till_o the_o seven_o thunder_n unseal_v thirty_o additional_a day_n to_o the_o 1260_o day_n viz._n 1290_o day_n and_o to_o that_o very_o end_v so_o often_o mention_v of_o the_o lot_n of_o blessedness_n by_o the_o addition_n of_o 45_o more_o be_v give_v 1335_o and_o all_o cast_n into_o indiction_n or_o eighty_o nine_o fifteen_o a_o way_n of_o account_v time_n so_o notorious_o know_v to_o have_v come_v into_o use_n after_o constantine_n as_o elsewhere_o shall_v be_v far_o urge_v and_o most_o evident_o characterize_n this_o time_n and_o it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v observe_v this_o so_o clear_a line_n be_v give_v here_o as_o in_o the_o revelat._n after_o a_o supposition_n of_o the_o book_n open_v at_o the_o half-time_n and_o not_o before_o except_o in_o this_o cypher_n of_o daniel_n time_n time_n half-time_n not_o to_o be_v understand_v but_o by_o the_o 1260_o day_n and_o other_o apocalyptical_a line_n now_o from_o all_o this_o may_v be_v collect_v by_o compare_n with_o the_o apocalyptick_a prophecy_n a_o line_n of_o time_n as_o exact_v as_o from_o the_o very_a age_n of_o the_o patriarch_n allow_v the_o hebrew_n copy_n there_o and_o the_o prophetical_a day_n for_o year_n here_o for_o first_o the_o 2300_o eu._n mor._n be_v so_o exact_a undoubted_a a_o entire_a number_n as_o to_o leave_v no_o dispute_n if_o grant_v to_o be_v a_o line_n of_o time_n the_o week_n end_v at_o the_o resurrection_n be_v so_o very_o full_a and_o complete_a a_o vision_n before_o this_o vision_n not_o only_o in_o the_o order_n of_o prophecy_n but_o of_o the_o express_a date_n of_o darius_n first_o and_o cyrus_n three_o the_o seal_n of_o prophecy_n in_o that_o vision_n just_a at_o the_o end_n of_o that_o vision_n of_o the_o week_n and_o the_o book_n shut_v and_o seal_v in_o this_o vision_n join_v those_o two_o vision_n close_o together_o the_o seal_a time_n and_o of_o the_o book_n shut_v by_o the_o apocalyptick_a prophecy_n in_o so_o orderly_a a_o progress_n as_o by_o compare_n with_o history_n it_o be_v find_v can_v but_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v 400_o year_n from_o the_o last_o half-week_n end_v then_o the_o 1335_o be_v so_o close_o join_v that_o they_o can_v be_v force_v asunder_o and_o so_o rivet_v into_o the_o end_n both_o by_o be_v a_o far_a resolution_n to_o daniel_n in_o his_o complaint_n of_o not_o understand_v for_o his_o knowledge_n of_o the_o end_n of_o wonder_n as_o also_o by_o the_o blessedness_n and_o daniel_n stand_v in_o his_o lot_n beside_o the_o evidence_n from_o the_o indiction_n so_o open_a and_o industrious_a be_v not_o small_a but_o what_o can_v daniel_n lot_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o day_n be_v of_o or_o in_o but_o of_o and_o in_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n and_o its_o holy_a priesthood_n it_o be_v impossible_a than_o the_o day_n shall_v fly_v back_o from_o the_o end_n these_o therefore_o be_v the_o whole_a of_o the_o 2300_o except_o 75_o the_o 75_o must_v be_v place_v in_o the_o forefront_n of_o all_o the_o number_n as_o we_o have_v see_v what_o reason_n from_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o word_n go_v forth_o have_v be_v find_v so_o to_o place_v just_a so_o many_o and_o if_o we_o allow_v that_o number_n to_o be_v 75_o there_o be_v as_o great_a a_o certainty_n the_o seal_a time_n must_v be_v just_a four_o hundred_o for_o one_o adju_v the_o other_o necessary_o if_o 75_o before_o the_o week_n there_o must_v be_v 400_o between_o the_o week_n or_o 490_o year_n and_o the_o 1335_o if_o 400_o there_o then_o 75_o here_o for_o so_o the_o 2300_o require_v now_o how_o each_o of_o these_o space_n of_o time_n the_o 400_o of_o the_o seal_n the_o time_n time_n half-time_n or_o twelve_o hundred_o sixty_o day_n of_o the_o trumpet_n the_o thirty_o of_o the_o voice_n the_o forty_o five_o of_o the_o vial_n how_o these_o i_o say_v be_v all_o replenish_v with_o their_o proper_a furniture_n we_o must_v be_v instruct_v by_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o revelation_n what_o great_a reason_n have_v we_o now_o to_o adore_v the_o spirit_n of_o remark_n remark_n jesus_n christ_n in_o this_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n and_o to_o search_v what_o or_o what_o manner_n of_o time_n it_o signify_v in_o this_o sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n give_v in_o prophetic_a scheme_n the_o very_a same_o thing_n that_o the_o transfiguration_n in_o so_o glorious_a a_o majestic_a appearance_n represent_v viz._n christ_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n with_o his_o star_n of_o the_o first_o magnitude_n prophet_n and_o apostle_n those_o wise_a turn_v many_o to_o righteousness_n and_o then_o the_o lesser_a ministerial_a star_n and_o the_o sporadick_a fellowship_n of_o saint_n include_v appear_v therein_o as_o those_o who_o be_v so_o turn_v to_o righteousness_n and_o this_o prophecy_n have_v be_v so_o long_o in_o the_o world_n and_o traverse_v such_o space_n of_o time_n like_o a_o vast_a tract_n of_o earth_n with_o chart_n map_n and_o sculpture_n fit_v to_o they_o and_o that_o come_v with_o such_o certainty_n and_o assurance_n into_o every_o hand_n be_v enlighten_v and_o enliven_v with_o new_a and_o fresh_a delineatory_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n prophecy_n or_o the_o revelation_n certain_o have_v not_o god_n in_o justice_n upon_o the_o apostasy_n divert_v the_o thought_n and_o labour_n of_o his_o servant_n from_o the_o illustration_n and_o demonstration_n of_o they_o so_o that_o they_o have_v not_o travel_v herein_o as_o in_o other_o part_n of_o christian_a verity_n nor_o by_o such_o a_o concert_n of_o mind_n and_o judgement_n herein_o the_o evidence_n both_o against_o atheism_n and_o the_o apostasy_n have_v much_o exceed_v what_o they_o arise_v to_o now_o no_o miracle_n except_o in_o constant_a and_o present_a motion_n before_o our_o eye_n nor_o hardly_o then_o be_v so_o intellectual_o sensible_a argument_n of_o the_o divine_a be_v of_o christianity_n and_o against_o antichristianism_n as_o these_o prophecy_n from_o time_n to_o time_n fulfil_v and_o this_o very_a prophecy_n of_o daniel_n be_v a_o most_o certain_a ground_n to_o expect_v such_o a_o prophecy_n as_o that_o of_o the_o revelation_n for_o one_o can_v be_v understand_v without_o the_o other_o and_o how_o admirable_o do_v they_o conspire_v for_o just_a at_o that_o seal_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o last_o half_a week_n begin_v the_o unseal_n also_o or_o the_o event_n come_v to_o pass_v in_o their_o just_a order_n and_o the_o apostolical_a ministry_n run_v to_o and_o fro_o to_o increase_v knowledge_n and_o just_a 16._o scal_n 400._o rev._n c._n 6._o then_o 1260_o in_o the_o six_o first_o trumpet_n c._n 8._o c._n 9_o then_o 30_o &_o 45_o in_o the_o voice_n c._n 14._o and_o vial_n of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n c._n 15._o c._n 16._o as_o they_o have_v hitherto_o proceed_v exact_o according_a to_o their_o time_n and_o place_n so_o far_o as_o within_o ten_o year_n end_n of_o the_o six_o trumpet_n so_o shall_v they_o proceed_v in_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n in_o the_o voice_n and_o the_o vial_n till_o the_o last_o end_n of_o wonder_n be_v produce_v and_o perfect_v bless_a therefore_o be_v he_o that_o wait_v and_o come_v thereunto_o he_o shall_v though_o out_o of_o this_o body_n certain_o then_o stand_v in_o his_o lot_n of_o that_o new_a jerusalem_n state_n and_o priesthood_n in_o a_o body_n of_o the_o first_o resurrection_n sect_n viii_o wherein_o be_v give_v a_o prefatory_n survey_v of_o the_o whole_a apocalyptical_a prophecy_n i_o be_o now_o bring_v down_o by_o the_o course_n of_o prophetic_a time_n to_o that_o very_a point_n of_o time_n where_o the_o series_n of_o apocalyptical_a vision_n begin_v so_o that_o although_o the_o line_n of_o time_n be_v by_o daniel_n stretch_v over_o whole_a apocalyptick_a time_n in_o the_o number_n give_v to_o he_o and_o in_o a_o general_a way_n some_o umbrage_n of_o those_o vision_n have_v be_v present_v by_o ezekiel_n and_o even_o by_o all_o the_o prophet_n since_o the_o world_n begin_v
the_o whole_a series_n of_o vision_n concern_v the_o beast_n derive_v from_o the_o dragon_n will_v be_v best_a understand_v and_o most_o full_o believe_v even_o as_o at_o the_o reformation_n there_o be_v most_o necessary_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o a_o long_a apostasy_n of_o the_o cruel_a tyranny_n of_o the_o beast_n over_o true_a christian_n and_o a_o visible_a pledge_n the_o ten_o king_n on_o the_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o carry_v the_o woman_n will_v at_o length_n fall_v from_o it_o but_o the_o end_n of_o that_o half-time_n will_v make_v a_o far_o both_o notoriety_n and_o assurance_n of_o these_o thing_n this_o allow_v the_o prophecy_n take_v no_o freedom_n but_o what_o be_v due_a to_o the_o grave_a history_n to_o place_n by_o way_n sometime_o of_o anticipation_n sometime_o of_o recollection_n the_o part_n of_o the_o history_n so_o as_o may_v best_o serve_v the_o purpose_n of_o the_o history_n and_o yet_o we_o can_v defer_v so_o little_a to_o the_o majesty_n of_o divine_a prophecy_n as_o be_v even_o challengeable_a by_o humane_a history_n for_o that_o be_v just_o entitle_v to_o a_o right_n of_o secret_n and_o insensible_a transition_n connexion_n transposition_n from_o one_o part_n to_o another_o which_o require_v leisurely_o meditation_n and_o thoughtful_a pause_n to_o find_v they_o and_o yet_o be_v so_o place_v as_o when_o find_v they_o give_v light_a one_o to_o another_o with_o usury_n although_o therefore_o i_o rise_v up_o with_o great_a reverence_n and_o honour_n to_o those_o great_a name_n who_o have_v think_v otherwise_o i_o can_v allow_v no_o beginning_n of_o apocalyptical_a time_n anew_o either_o at_o the_o open_a book_n ch_n 11._o or_o at_o ch_z 12._o but_o only_a a_o recollection_n of_o those_o thing_n after_o their_o redundant_fw-la swell_n out_o of_o their_o channel_n one_o to_o the_o first_o trumpet_n the_o latter_a to_o the_o five_o seal_n only_o the_o two_o systeme_n have_v each_o one_o and_o the_o same_o epoch_n give_v particular_o to_o each_o the_o church_n be_v close_a and_o even_o cement_v and_o solder_v one_o to_o another_o and_o so_o the_o seal_n trumpet_n etc._n etc._n and_o their_o connexion_n even_o hermetical_o seal_v and_o both_o from_o the_o same_o epoch_n the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n derive_v themselves_o and_o as_o to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o whole_a even_o as_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o great_a use_n in_o the_o interpret_n general_n scripture_n that_o the_o literal_a sense_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v where_o no_o analogy_n of_o faith_n or_o scripture-reason_n be_v destroy_v by_o it_o so_o here_o the_o mystical_a sense_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v choose_v where_o no_o such_o injury_n be_v commit_v upon_o the_o analogy_n of_o scripture_n truth_n and_o yet_o as_o in_o the_o one_o case_n a_o subordinate_a mystical_a sense_n may_v be_v allow_v so_o in_o this_o a_o subordinate_a literal_a sense_n may_v be_v allow_v to_o give_v only_o two_o or_o three_o instance_n hear_v and_o read_v this_o prophecy_n have_v first_o the_o mystical_a sense_n of_o a_o close_a conformity_n to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n worship_n and_o practice_n according_a to_o it_o which_o make_v all_o bless_a who_o so_o read_v and_o so_o hear_v though_o they_o do_v not_o interpret_v nor_o concern_v themselves_o in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o this_o prophecy_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n a_o accumulative_a honour_n and_o happiness_n on_o those_o who_o join_v both_o these_o sense_n in_o themselves_o together_o as_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o who_o add_v and_o take_v away_o by_o antichristianism_n from_o the_o word_n of_o it_o by_o break_v its_o holy_a measure_n in_o faith_n worship_n and_o practice_n shall_v lose_v their_o part_n in_o its_o promise_n and_o have_v their_o part_n in_o its_o plague_n although_o they_o neither_o add_v nor_o take_v away_o in_o the_o literal_a sense_n and_o yet_o they_o shall_v receive_v accumulative_a plague_n who_o have_v do_v the_o first_o and_o then_o by_o false_a and_o distort_a interpretation_n add_v the_o latter_a also_o thus_o open_v the_o book_n of_o this_o prophecy_n and_o its_o seal_n be_v principal_o the_o several_a effect_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o principal_a one_o at_o the_o reformation_n and_o not_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o book_n or_o a_o new_a course_n of_o prophecy_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v subordinate_o true_a there_o be_v then_o a_o great_a clearness_n and_o illustration_n of_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o a_o new_a order_n as_o it_o be_v of_o holy_a prophecy_n and_o instruction_n and_o this_o prophecy_n do_v then_o recall_v its_o own_o discovery_n of_o thing_n at_o that_o time_n after_o the_o apostasy_n so_o long_a darken_n it_o and_o the_o gospel_n and_o enlarge_v its_o former_a brief_a note_n and_o so_o come_v quick_o to_o pass_v have_v the_o literal_a sense_n that_o then_o immediate_o begin_v apocalyptical_a event_n each_o in_o their_o own_o order_n to_o come_v speedy_o and_o immediate_o to_o pass_v although_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n run_v out_o '_o ere_o all_o come_v to_o pass_v as_o a_o army_n may_v be_v say_v to_o come_v present_o when_o the_o avaunt_o corrier_n first_o appear_v although_o the_o rear_n may_v be_v long_o in_o come_v because_o of_o the_o numerous_a body_n come_v on_o orderly_a and_o in_o just_a file_n thus_o every_o apocalyptical_a event_n be_v on_o the_o wing_n and_o dart_v itself_o into_o existence_n without_o the_o least_o of_o slumber_v or_o linger_a when_o its_o time_n be_v to_o come_v but_o the_o mystical_a sense_n be_v that_o whereas_o that_o sublime_a event_n of_o the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n rise_v up_o as_o a_o mountain_n divide_v and_o part_v the_o former_a world_n and_o time_n from_o the_o latter_a time_n or_o the_o last_o day_n and_o all_o beyond_o the_o resurrection_n be_v as_o a_o book_n close_v and_o seal_v up_o so_o as_o that_o it_o can_v not_o till_o the_o resurrection_n make_v a_o offer_n of_o appearance_n then_o it_o do_v and_o therefore_o then_o proper_o seal_v down_o with_o seven_o seal_n and_o yet_o by_o their_o open_n it_o be_v in_o a_o daily_a motion_n to_o its_o appearance_n but_o those_o two_o world_n be_v of_o such_o different_a line_n of_o communication_n that_o nothing_o pass_v in_o prophetical_a account_n into_o existence_n or_o be_v out_o of_o one_o into_o the_o other_o even_o as_o the_o world_n on_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o equinoctial_a line_n be_v remarkable_o take_v notice_n of_o as_o two_o distinct_a part_n of_o the_o world_n how_o near_o soever_o they_o join_v who_o be_v on_o each_o side_n next_o to_o it_o thus_o nothing_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o line_n before_o the_o resurrection_n be_v so_o much_o as_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o be_v to_o be_v after_o the_o resurrection_n or_o to_o have_v any_o motion_n account_v to_o it_o but_o after_o that_o resurrection_n every_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o latter_a day_n be_v describe_v as_o come_v quick_o to_o pass_v each_o in_o its_o own_o order_n and_o time_n and_o know_v its_o place_n and_o march_v in_o its_o own_o distance_n none_o as_o that_o army_n joel_n 2._o 7_o 8._o thrust_v another_o or_o break_v rank_n but_o all_o due_o place_v in_o their_o clime_n as_o on_o this_o side_n the_o line_n and_o now_o have_v give_v this_o general_a view_n of_o the_o apocalyptical_a prophecy_n and_o its_o order_n of_o time_n i_o will_v discourse_v brief_o first_o on_o the_o systeme_n of_o the_o church-prophecy_n or_o of_o the_o seven_o church_n and_o observe_v their_o concert_n with_o those_o line_n of_o time_n that_o rule_v the_o evening_n and_o morning_n or_o night_n and_o day_n of_o apocalyptical_a time_n sect_n ix_o wherein_o a_o proof_n be_v give_v the_o seven_o church_n carry_v with_o they_o a_o line_n of_o time_n contemporize_v with_o whole_a apocalyptick_a time_n apoc._n c._n 2._o c._n 3._o that_o these_o seven_o church_n be_v intend_v to_o bear_v by_o their_o symbolisme_n a_o line_n of_o time_n equal_a to_o the_o whole_a apocalyptick_a time_n i_o shall_v at_o present_a use_n no_o other_o argument_n but_o these_o general_a one_o reserve_v the_o more_o particular_a treaty_n upon_o these_o church_n to_o another_o part_n of_o this_o discourse_n these_o church_n be_v as_o the_o whole_a prophecy_n of_o a_o mystical_a argu._n 1_o sense_n and_o importance_n christ_n therefore_o prefix_n i_o will_v show_v you_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o seven_o candlestick_n the_o seven_o candlestick_n be_v the_o seven_o church_n where_o the_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o the_o expound_v the_o star_n into_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o candlestick_n into_o church_n be_v all_o the_o mystery_n open_v for_o even_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v still_o mystery_n or_o a_o mystical_a expression_n except_o
the_o silence_n of_o any_o such_o voice_n move_v enquiry_n why_o there_o be_v no_o such_o voice_n and_o every_o visum_fw-la or_o thing_n to_o be_v see_v in_o both_o sort_n of_o seal_n the_o voice_v or_o the_o seem_o silent_a seal_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v of_o as_o they_o have_v relation_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n especial_o because_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o three_o last_o seal_n without_o voice_n have_v something_o to_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o those_o four_o live_v creature_n 3._o as_o to_o the_o time_n and_o its_o space_n that_o be_v measure_v out_o by_o these_o seal_n see_v no_o line_n of_o time_n be_v express_o give_v with_o they_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v find_v out_o but_o either_o first_o by_o some_o of_o the_o visa_fw-la or_o thing_n see_v at_o the_o open_n of_o these_o seal_n that_o be_v so_o certain_a as_o to_o be_v necessary_o agree_v in_o and_o thereby_o measure_v from_o they_o on_o each_o side_n of_o they_o to_o take_v the_o whole_a course_n or_o second_o by_o the_o have_v good_a assurance_n what_o be_v the_o visa_fw-la of_o the_o first_o and_o last_o of_o these_o seal_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v know_v when_o they_o begin_v and_o when_o they_o end_v by_o the_o most_o undoubted_a account_n of_o history_n or_o three_o by_o observe_v if_o there_o be_v any_o light_n concern_v the_o just_a middle_a point_n of_o their_o time_n or_o last_o by_o some_o other_o line_n of_o time_n that_o may_v how_o much_o large_a soever_o so_o as_o to_o comprehend_v it_o yet_o set_v limit_n to_o it_o in_o its_o beginning_n middle_a and_o end_v by_o some_o certain_a line_n of_o time_n that_o must_v end_v just_a before_o it_o and_o some_o other_o line_n of_o time_n that_o must_v follow_v it_o and_o that_o all_o take_v together_o can_v answer_v that_o whole_a line_n and_o all_o these_o way_n i_o shall_v use_v to_o come_v to_o the_o exact_a measure_n of_o the_o space_n of_o the_o seven_o seal_n and_o what_o measure_v of_o time_n be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v allow_v to_o they_o let_v we_o then_o examine_v the_o importance_n of_o every_o seal_n first_o by_o what_o it_o discover_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o join_n of_o the_o visum_fw-la or_o thing_n to_o be_v see_v and_o the_o voice_n together_o or_o remark_v upon_o the_o no_o voice_n and_o the_o equivalent_a supply_n with_o the_o visum_fw-la or_o thing_n to_o be_v see_v and_o then_o collect_v the_o time_n of_o these_o seven_o seal_n the_o visum_fw-la or_o thing_n to_o be_v see_v of_o the_o first_o seal_n be_v as_o be_v seal_v 1_o hardly_o controvert_v by_o any_o the_o ride_v out_o of_o christ_n on_o his_o white_a horse_n with_o his_o bow_n and_o the_o right_n of_o a_o crown_n conquer_a and_o to_o conquer_v this_o than_o be_v the_o aim_n of_o christ_n to_o obtain_v his_o crown_n in_o the_o first_o place_n by_o the_o pure_a and_o holy_a arm_n and_o power_n of_o his_o gospel_n in_o the_o universal_a perfect_a ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o till_o the_o effect_n of_o that_o be_v try_v he_o make_v show_v of_o no_o other_o whatever_o far_a aim_n christ_n may_v have_v if_o his_o gospel_n be_v not_o submit_v to_o thus_o be_v christ_n ride_v out_o prophesy_v of_o of_o old_a ride_v prosperous_o because_o of_o truth_n meekness_n and_o righteousness_n ps_n 45._o 3._o and_o upon_o this_o horse_n he_o ride_v out_o with_o final_a victory_n rev._n 19_o who_o name_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o then_o be_v then_o the_o state_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n the_o make_v a_o universal_a offer_n of_o itself_o to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n by_o that_o high_a ministry_n of_o person_n immediate_o guide_v and_o infallible_o inspire_v and_o accomplish_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n and_o power_n of_o miracle_n to_o make_v the_o publication_n of_o that_o decree_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o ask_v of_o i_o and_o as_o i_o have_v set_v thou_o upon_o my_o holy_a hill_n of_o zion_n by_o thy_o resurrection_n so_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o heathen_a for_o thy_o inheritance_n and_o the_o uttermost_a end_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o thy_o possession_n and_o if_o they_o will_v not_o submit_v thou_o shall_v break_v they_o with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n and_o dash_v they_o in_o piece_n like_o a_o potter_n vessel_n psal_n 2._o 6._o the_o apostolical_a voice_n deep_a and_o loud_o as_o thunder_n royal_z as_o of_o a_o lion_n the_o first_o live_v creature_n come_v and_o see_v be_v a_o far_a assurance_n that_o this_o be_v then_o the_o state_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n in_o this_o free_a and_o universal_a offer_n of_o itself_o it_o bespeak_v the_o world_n therefore_o in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o psalm_n be_v wise_a now_o o_o you_o king_n be_v instruct_v you_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n rejoice_v with_o tremble_v kiss_v the_o son_n lest_o he_o be_v angry_a and_o for_o break_v his_o band_n and_o cast_v his_o cord_n from_o you_o he_o break_v you_o at_o last_o as_o a_o potter_n vessel_n with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n or_o as_o the_o stone_n cut_v out_o of_o the_o mountain_n without_o hand_n shiver_n the_o image_n of_o which_o the_o next_o seal_n give_v a_o type_n now_o this_o appearance_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o the_o most_o holy_a declare_v anoint_v in_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o make_v know_v the_o thing_n seal_v and_o to_o be_v unseal_v and_o that_o the_o end_n may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o beginning_n and_o the_o whole_a compass_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o seal_n by_o both_o for_o nothing_o can_v make_v all_o these_o more_o know_v nor_o the_o stay_n the_o seal_n have_v on_o this_o kingdom_n from_o appear_v more_o manifest_a than_o this_o its_o offer_n to_o appear_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o last_o half_a week_n in_o the_o apostolical_a preach_v and_o yet_o prophecy_n and_o vision_n concern_v it_o seal_v up_o so_o that_o it_o can_v not_o bring_v forth_o this_o kingdom_n till_o its_o just_a time_n constitute_v by_o the_o father_n and_o the_o oath_n of_o christ_n himself_o and_o that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n and_o of_o the_o world_n of_o the_o gentile_n immediate_o upon_o the_o refusal_n of_o this_o king_n upon_o the_o holy_a seal_n 2_o hill_n of_o zion_n he_o begin_v to_o use_v his_o rod_n of_o iron_n and_o send_v out_o the_o red_a horse_n of_o war_n the_o visum_fw-la or_o thing_n to_o be_v see_v under_o the_o second_o seal_n join_v with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n come_v and_o see_v but_o abate_v and_o weaken_v not_o a_o voice_n of_o thunder_n whereas_o have_v the_o kingdom_n be_v accept_v the_o thunder_n shall_v not_o only_o have_v continue_v but_o multiply_v into_o thunder_n and_o voice_n and_o grow_v loud_a and_o loud_o to_o introduce_v the_o kingdom_n but_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n upon_o the_o true_a kingdom_n reject_v work_v on_o and_o enervate_v the_o voice_n though_o it_o be_v still_o apostolical_a come_v and_o see_v as_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o ox_n as_o if_o itself_o be_v fall_v a_o sacrifice_n at_o the_o altar_n deplore_a the_o slaughter_n then_o come_v upon_o the_o world_n so_o this_o second_o live_v creature_n the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n therefore_o be_v as_o retreat_v in_o the_o gracious_a and_o merciful_a offer_n the_o voice_n be_v not_o so_o grand_a and_o sound_a but_o instead_o of_o it_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o red_a horse_n of_o war_n have_v a_o great_a sword_n give_v he_o and_o it_o be_v give_v to_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v take_v peace_n from_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o man_n shall_v kill_v one_o another_o this_o certain_o be_v especial_o verify_v in_o those_o desolation_n of_o the_o jew_n under_o vespasian_n and_o titus_n and_o those_o succeed_a warlike_a emperor_n trajan_n and_o hadrian_n under_o the_o first_o of_o which_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v so_o dreadful_a and_o bloody_a till_o the_o last_o ruin_n by_o hadrian_n that_o no_o time_n nor_o history_n be_v ever_o deep_o dye_v in_o blood_n nor_o can_v this_o be_v without_o dismal_a recoil_v of_o the_o great_a sword_n upon_o the_o empire_n itself_o within_o the_o bowel_n of_o which_o it_o be_v continual_o sheathe_v insomuch_o that_o hadrian_n in_o his_o account_n of_o the_o final_a war_n with_o the_o jew_n omit_v the_o usual_a preface_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o senate_n ego_fw-la quidem_fw-la &_o exercitus_fw-la valemus_fw-la we_o and_o our_o army_n be_v well_o this_o he_o suppress_v as_o not_o agree_v to_o that_o season_n of_o so_o great_a loss_n of_o blood_n to_o the_o roman_n this_o be_v a_o very_a affrightful_a appearance_n of_o this_o kingdom_n and_o of_o great_a evidence_n
of_o its_o greatness_n and_o power_n of_o revenge_n especial_o upon_o the_o jew_n those_o murderer_n and_o enemy_n that_o will_v not_o have_v christ_n reign_v over_o they_o and_o it_o return_v back_o upon_o the_o gentile_n also_o and_o the_o roman_a empire_n guilty_a of_o the_o same_o opposition_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n though_o not_o against_o the_o same_o light_n nor_o with_o the_o same_o unnaturalness_n for_o as_o to_o they_o he_o come_v more_o particular_o to_o his_o own_o and_o his_o own_o receive_v he_o not_o and_o therefore_o have_v after_o the_o crucify_a of_o he_o reject_v his_o dominion_n the_o people_n of_o that_o prince_n vespasian_n come_v and_o destroy_v the_o city_n and_o the_o sanctuary_n as_o with_o a_o flood_n and_o torrent_n of_o vengeance_n and_o now_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o war_n desolation_n upon_o the_o jew_n be_v determine_v and_o by_o the_o overspread_v of_o the_o abominable_a army_n be_v pour_v upon_o the_o desolate_a by_o hadrian_n after_o the_o desolation_n of_o titus_n daniel_n 9_o ult_n now_o this_o great_a judgement_n and_o desolation_n as_o a_o grand_a argument_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n in_o revenge_n of_o which_o this_o desolation_n come_v upon_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o reverberation_n or_o repercussion_n and_o returning_n of_o it_o upon_o the_o heathen_a empire_n and_o their_o persecution_n of_o christian_n be_v a_o great_a subject_n for_o the_o apostolical_a voice_n to_o enlarge_v itself_o upon_o and_o to_o persuade_v man_n to_o pay_v homage_n to_o the_o king_n of_o king_n who_o can_v thus_o avenge_v himself_o and_o so_o of_o great_a use_n be_v that_o sound_n of_o the_o voice_n come_v and_o see_v that_o behold_v the_o desolation_n that_o be_v make_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o earth_n they_o may_v be_v still_o and_o know_v that_o he_o be_v god_n and_o exalt_v he_o in_o the_o very_a heathen_a earth_n after_o this_o severe_a vengeance_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o rider_n of_o the_o seal_n 3_o red_a horse_n there_o ensue_v the_o open_n of_o the_o three_o seal_n and_o the_o thing_n to_o be_v see_v under_o it_o be_v a_o black_a horse_n and_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o it_o have_v a_o pair_n of_o balance_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o the_o apostolical_a voice_n continue_v as_o under_o the_o last_o former_a seal_n come_v and_o see_v and_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o three_o live_v creature_n the_o voice_n as_o of_o a_o man._n now_o that_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n under_o this_o seal_n it_o be_v to_o be_v close_o examine_v what_o this_o visum_fw-la or_o thing_n to_o be_v see_v import_v even_o the_o black_a horse_n and_o the_o rider_n with_o a_o pair_n of_o balance_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o then_o the_o distinct_a voice_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o live_a creature_n it_o have_v be_v general_o interpret_v all_o to_o famine_n as_o if_o the_o seal_n be_v a_o course_n of_o judgement_n but_o beside_o that_o neither_o the_o first_o nor_o the_o five_o seal_n carry_v any_o signification_n of_o judgement_n by_o a_o more_o sagacious_a inspection_n into_o the_o spectacle_n of_o this_o seal_n after_o that_o forename_a excellent_a duumvirate_n of_o apocalyptical_a interpreter_n mr._n mede_n and_o dr._n more_o and_o compare_v of_o it_o with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o three_o live_v creature_n as_o of_o a_o man_n i_o be_o abundant_o satisfy_v the_o black_a horse_n and_o the_o balance_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o rider_n be_v a_o emblem_n of_o that_o solemn_a imperatorial_n justice_n of_o the_o emperor_n of_o this_o three_o seal_n the_o antonine_n especial_o that_o great_a mirror_n of_o justice_n to_o magistrate_n alexander_n severus_n in_o who_o i_o account_v the_o interval_n of_o this_o seal_n to_o end_n who_o bear_v in_o his_o hand_n continual_o in_o all_o administration_n that_o great_a balance_n of_o the_o world_n that_o balance_n of_o commutative_a justice_n give_v by_o our_o saviour_n do_v as_o you_o will_v have_v do_v to_o you_o and_o no_o otherwise_o and_o this_o as_o so_o remarkable_a in_o itself_o and_o of_o a_o high_a prophetical_a use_n as_o we_o shall_v discourse_n when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o time_n affix_v to_o these_o seal_n and_o particular_o to_o this_o a_o voice_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o live_a creature_n call_v to_o the_o more_o solemn_a observation_n of_o a_o measure_n of_o wheat_n for_o a_o penny_n three_o measure_n of_o barley_n for_o a_o penny_n and_o see_v that_o thou_o hurt_v not_o the_o oil_n and_o the_o wine_n and_o now_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o relation_n to_o this_o visum_fw-la i_o estimate_v by_o those_o high_o rational_a and_o apocalyptick_a discourse_n for_o christianity_n by_o justin_n martyr_n athenagoras_n apollonius_n in_o his_o public_a account_n of_o christianity_n to_o the_o roman_a senate_n clemens_n alexandrius_n tertullian_n origen_n minutius_n felix_n who_o all_o appeal_v to_o these_o just_a and_o manly_a emperor_n and_o offer_v to_o lay_v christianity_n before_o they_o as_o equal_a judge_n and_o that_o will_v but_o show_v themselves_o men._n and_o alexander_n lady_n son_n of_o mammaea_n a_o christian_a lady_n severus_n be_v so_o far_o prevail_v upon_o by_o those_o weighty_a reason_n that_o history_n have_v report_v he_o to_o have_v decide_v for_o christianity_n and_o as_o he_o show_v a_o constant_a reverence_n to_o that_o great_a apothegme_n of_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n so_o to_o have_v build_v a_o temple_n in_o honour_n to_o he_o upon_o which_o very_a last_o particular_a yet_o i_o lay_v no_o weight_n as_o be_v too_o doubtful_a but_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o state_n of_o this_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n bear_v up_o by_o the_o manly_a effort_n of_o reason_n manage_v by_o those_o apostolic_a person_n before_o name_v before_o those_o forename_a emperor_n and_o alexander_n particular_o be_v so_o beyond_o all_o historical_a dispute_n as_o to_o sway_v i_o much_o more_o than_o those_o inquisitive_a search_n for_o some_o dearth_n or_o famine_n that_o may_v be_v adjust_v to_o the_o time_n of_o this_o seal_n for_o i_o account_v it_o a_o rule_n in_o this_o and_o all_o other_o part_n of_o this_o prophecy_n that_o the_o interpretation_n depend_v not_o upon_o dark_a and_o obscure_a part_n of_o history_n but_o upon_o the_o most_o conspicuous_a open_v and_o clear_a and_o that_o be_v most_o know_v and_o notorious_a in_o it_o and_o it_o be_v to_o i_o a_o just_a suspicion_n upon_o any_o interpretation_n that_o be_v otherwise_o ground_v after_o this_o gracious_a trial_n and_o essay_n upon_o the_o heathen_a empire_n seal_n 4_o to_o draw_v it_o by_o the_o cord_n of_o a_o man_n and_o by_o the_o band_n of_o reason_n immediate_o follow_v the_o four_o seal_n in_o which_o open_v the_o visum_fw-la or_o thing_n to_o be_v see_v be_v the_o pale_a horse_n and_o in_o the_o place_n of_o any_o imperial_a rider_n sit_v death_n and_o hades_n the_o grave_a or_o hell_n follow_v it_o as_o its_o attendant_a emblem_n and_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o four_o live_v creature_n as_o a_o eagle_n draw_v by_o the_o carcase_n say_v come_v and_o see_v this_o import_v that_o complication_n of_o evil_n and_o judgement_n the_o sword_n the_o famine_n the_o pestilence_n and_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o power_n be_v give_v to_o death_n over_o a_o four_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n or_o every_o four_o of_o it_o that_o be_v upon_o all_o quarter_n of_o it_o under_o this_o seal_n then_o in_o the_o time_n of_o those_o many_o cruel_a and_o short_a live_v emperor_n between_o alexander_n severus_n and_o dioclesian_n which_o be_v as_o beast_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o savageness_n and_o so_o be_v a_o most_o famous_a historical_a commentary_n upon_o this_o seal_n be_v show_v the_o mighty_a vengeance_n and_o wrath_n of_o god_n upon_o a_o impenitent_a and_o imperswasible_a empire_n and_o this_o by_o that_o apostolical_a voice_n to_o come_v and_o see_v or_o to_o consider_v it_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n vindicate_v itself_o be_v so_o far_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v even_o ready_a to_o break_v in_o with_o fury_n upon_o the_o heathen_a world_n and_o that_o patience_n so_o much_o injure_v and_o abuse_v be_v now_o about_o to_o flame_n out_o in_o utmost_a wrath_n so_o far_o therefore_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v advance_v as_o to_o have_v make_v its_o last_o trial_n of_o grace_n upon_o pagan_a rome_n and_o upon_o this_o undoubted_o the_o apostolical_a ministry_n insist_v in_o its_o come_v and_o see_v as_o ezekiel_n 22._o ezek._n 14._o from_o 12_o to_o 22._o of_o old_a as_o god_n say_v there_o when_o i_o bring_v my_o four_o great_a judgement_n the_o sword_n pestilence_n famine_n and_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o earth_n though_o noah_n job_n and_o daniel_n stand_v before_o i_o to_o turn_v away_o my_o wrath_n they_o shall_v deliver_v only_o their_o own_o soul_n and_o now_o
as_o to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n all_o along_o these_o seal_n past_a there_o be_v a_o plain_a appearance_n of_o it_o in_o the_o apostolic_a voice_n till_o just_a the_o entrance_n of_o the_o four_o seal_n from_o that_o time_n these_o voice_n cease_v which_o have_v so_o far_o as_o support_v by_o the_o character_n of_o imperial_a history_n declare_v to_o we_o the_o time_n and_o state_n of_o the_o church_n as_o before_o draw_v out_o in_o the_o labour_n and_o patience_n and_o suffering_n of_o the_o ephesine_n church_n while_o those_o apostolical_a voice_n last_v although_o there_o be_v such_o a_o leaven_n of_o the_o apostasy_n hide_v in_o it_o that_o it_o be_v charge_v to_o have_v leave_v its_o first_o love_n one_o great_a instance_n of_o which_o be_v in_o victor_n excommunication_n of_o the_o asian_a church_n upon_o the_o score_n of_o the_o unwritten_a ceremony_n of_o keep_v easter_n at_o all_o much_o more_o unwritten_a as_o to_o criticism_n of_o time_n which_o make_v that_o so_o great_a feud_n the_o five_o seal_n so_o plain_o open_v in_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o seal_n 5_o christian_a martyr_n as_o to_o assure_v we_o this_o prophecy_n as_o also_o other_o scripture-prophecy_n and_o note_n of_o time_n be_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o of_o heathen_a empire_n and_o state_n yet_o by_o the_o course_n of_o the_o seal_n we_o may_v easy_o know_v at_o what_o hour_n of_o the_o empire_n it_o be_v as_o by_o refer_v to_o the_o peculiar_a forego_v church-prophecy_n we_o know_v under_o what_o symbol_n of_o the_o church_n it_o lie_v and_o from_o both_o that_o it_o be_v the_o last_o and_o cruel_a ten_o year_n persecution_n or_o ten_o day_n tribulation_n begin_v by_o dioclesian_n while_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v under_o that_o peculiar_a symbol_n of_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n that_o it_o be_v about_o the_o time_n of_o dioclesian_n the_o current_n of_o the_o former_a seal_n and_o the_o immediate_o follow_v desolation_n of_o heathenism_n under_o constantine_n assure_v we_o that_o it_o be_v under_o the_o symbol_n of_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n its_o peculiar_a character_n of_o suffering_n and_o ten_o day_n tribulation_n make_v out_o as_o also_o in_o that_o there_o be_v no_o long_o any_o apostolical_a voice_n but_o the_o voice_n of_o soul_n that_o be_v go_v out_o of_o martyr_a body_n it_o signify_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n near_o a_o height_n and_o from_o that_o very_a occasion_n of_o the_o tomb_n relic_n memory_n and_o veneration_n of_o martyr_n and_o trust_v in_o their_o negotiation_n out_o of_o the_o body_n for_o those_o they_o leave_v behind_o in_o it_o grow_v much_o high_a however_o god_n gracious_o accept_v this_o suffer_a church_n and_o lay_v no_o imputation_n upon_o it_o but_o only_o on_o the_o sathanick_n synagogue_n he_o seem_v to_o have_v more_o respect_n to_o the_o soul_n complaint_n than_o to_o the_o surviver_n of_o that_o church_n he_o appoint_v they_o white_a robe_n but_o as_o unconcern_v in_o mediation_n for_o any_o in_o this_o world_n they_o be_v command_v to_o rest_n and_o there_o be_v on_o their_o instance_n a_o signification_n of_o a_o new_a roll_n of_o martyr_n under_o antichrist_n when_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o those_o of_o the_o first_o resurrection_n shall_v be_v complete_a over_o who_o the_o second_o death_n shall_v have_v no_o power_n this_o seal_n than_o be_v the_o very_a joint_n betwixt_o the_o kingdom_n of_o paganism_n fall_v but_o not_o yet_o fall_v and_o that_o short_a appearance_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n in_o the_o christian_a empire_n till_o theodosius_n the_o great_a the_o army_n of_o martyr_n have_v not_o yet_o overcome_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o testimony_n which_o they_o hold_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o yet_o celebrate_v with_o that_o doxology_n chap._n 12._o but_o there_o be_v nothing_o come_v between_o this_o cry_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o that_o kingdom_n although_o speedy_o surprise_v by_o antichristianism_n into_o which_o pagan_a demonolatry_n be_v first_o transplant_v on_o this_o very_a occasion_n of_o martyr_n suffering_n complete_v within_o this_o seal_n especial_o and_o thus_o we_o have_v the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n within_o this_o seal_n assure_v by_o one_o of_o the_o most_o famous_a monument_n of_o ecclesiastic_a history_n the_o six_o seal_n be_v that_o great_a seal_n open_v by_o which_o the_o heathen_a seal_n 6_o state_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v demolish_v and_o which_o carry_v most_o abundant_a instruction_n of_o this_o whole_a time_n of_o the_o seal_n and_o also_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o church_n during_o that_o time_n 1._o that_o heathen_a idolatry_n that_o have_v seat_v itself_o as_o in_o the_o heaven_n and_o from_o thence_o reach_v down_o itself_o into_o the_o earth_n and_o in_o the_o deep_a be_v as_o by_o a_o earthquake_n remove_v from_o below_o and_o as_o by_o a_o tempest_n above_o be_v dismount_v and_o depose_v from_o thence_o so_o that_o here_o satan_n as_o the_o dragon_n be_v cast_v down_o from_o heaven_n as_o by_o lightning_n according_a to_o the_o vision_n chap._n 12._o 2._o the_o emperor_n or_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o all_o its_o great_a man_n lay_v aside_o their_o greatness_n even_o to_o their_o imperial_a purple_n and_o diadem_n as_o particular_o dioclesian_n the_o arch-persecutor_n and_o maximian_n with_o he_o move_v not_o so_o much_o by_o any_o thing_n as_o by_o a_o divine_a terror_n by_o the_o fear_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n and_o of_o the_o lamb._n and_o this_o be_v give_v as_o a_o lively_a type_n of_o christ_n glorious_a appearance_n in_o the_o destruction_n of_o his_o enemy_n who_o will_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v in_o that_o day_n of_o his_o wrath_n what_o mountain_n den_n or_o cave_n will_v then_o open_a to_o receive_v affright_a man_n 3._o from_o hence_o it_o plain_o appear_v what_o be_v to_o be_v open_v by_o christ_n open_v of_o these_o seal_n even_o no_o other_o than_o the_o glorious_a visible_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n only_o as_o a_o eminent_a assurance_n of_o which_o he_o declare_v himself_o in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o a_o crown_n be_v give_v to_o he_o as_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o his_o right_n though_o to_o obtain_v it_o he_o be_v to_o go_v out_o conquer_a and_o to_o conquer_v here_o then_o in_o this_o christian_a empire_n begin_v at_o the_o six_o seal_n and_o so_o go_v on_o in_o the_o seven_o seal_n to_o theodostus_n victory_n over_o all_o the_o remain_v of_o heathenism_n after_o julian_n in_o the_o senate_n magistracy_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n gather_v to_o a_o head_n in_o eugenius_n and_o argobastes_n this_o kingdom_n appear_v as_o in_o a_o emblem_n and_o earnest_n of_o itself_o and_o so_o it_o be_v celebrate_v chap._n 12._o with_o praise_n and_o triumph_n as_o in_o heaven_n though_o even_o there_o surprise_v 4._o here_o the_o state_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n in_o the_o church_n be_v solemn_o declare_v and_o also_o as_o in_o the_o christian_a empire_n in_o the_o church_n to_o show_v the_o high_a tower_a synagogue_n of_o satan_n there_o be_v no_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o a_o angel_n cry_v to_o the_o four_o angel_n not_o to_o hurt_v etc._n etc._n a_o certain_a indication_n of_o bad_a symptom_n appear_v at_o this_o in_o itself_o happy_a change_n 2._o there_o be_v a_o pure_a church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n yet_o public_a and_o visible_a but_o upon_o the_o retreat_n for_o it_o be_v just_a now_o retire_v and_o about_o to_o be_v seal_v that_o be_v under_o that_o over-growing_a synagogue_n 3._o this_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o church_n be_v to_o have_v abate_v the_o general_a unhappiness_n of_o fall_v sinful_a man_n a_o more_o quiet_a and_o illustrious_a state_n than_o heretofore_o viz._n in_o a_o christian_a empire_n for_o till_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o seal_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v past_a the_o four_o angel_n that_o have_v the_o four_o first_o trumpet_n be_v command_v to_o hold_v the_o wind_n that_o no_o such_o hurt_n can_v be_v do_v upon_o the_o empire_n as_o be_v after_o to_o be_v do_v when_o they_o sound_v this_o be_v smyrna_n crown_n so_o that_o though_o god_n have_v determine_v the_o period_n of_o the_o blood-guilty_a roman_a western_a empire_n as_o imperial_a yet_o it_o be_v keep_v off_o till_o it_o become_v pagan-antichristian_a a_o new_a paganism_n then_o god_n give_v it_o in_o wrath_n after_o a_o time_n a_o antichristian_a king_n its_o former_a imperial_a king_n be_v take_v away_o in_o wrath_n first_o 5._o the_o precise_a time_n of_o seal_v that_o be_v of_o cover_v all_o the_o true_a visible_a glory_n of_o christianity_n in_o the_o christian_a empire_n be_v hereby_o set_v viz._n until_o the_o first_o trumpet_n for_o till_o all_o be_v seal_v no_o
wind_n can_v stir_v when_o therefore_o the_o first_o blast_v trumpet_n sound_v all_o true_a christian_a glory_n be_v cover_v shut_v and_o seal_v and_o apostate_n christianity_n alone_o in_o any_o splendid_a public_a appearance_n can_v be_v hurt_v 6._o at_o this_o very_a joint_n of_o time_n upon_o the_o christian_a empire_n be_v graft_v a_o pre-appearance_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n in_o the_o innumerable_a palm-bearing_a company_n 7._o that_o glorious_a kingdom_n be_v notwithstanding_o the_o six_o seal_n open_v apparent_o stay_v and_o estopped_a in_o seal_v the_o 144000_o of_o god_n servant_n that_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n in_o they_o can_v not_o appear_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o a_o king_n be_v in_o the_o multitude_n of_o his_o people_n the_o seal_v therefore_o this_o square_a israelitish_n apostolical_a number_n be_v the_o seal_n and_o estoppage_n of_o the_o kingdom_n itself_o the_o seven_o seal_n be_v the_o last_o portion_n of_o this_o seal_a time_n and_o it_o keep_v its_o hold_n on_o all_o future_a time_n till_o the_o book_n and_o kingdom_n be_v resign_v in_o which_o the_o visum_fw-la or_o thing_n see_v be_v the_o seven_o angel_n that_o stand_v before_o god_n to_o who_o be_v give_v seven_o trumpet_n and_o these_o angel_n prepare_v themselves_o to_o sound_v till_o they_o just_o begin_v to_o sound_v make_v up_o the_o representation_n of_o this_o seal_n the_o state_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v 1._o by_o the_o silence_n as_o characteristic_a a_o note_n as_o any_o of_o the_o former_a voice_n for_o in_o the_o structure_n of_o this_o divine_a prophecy_n the_o symbol_n be_v not_o only_o draw_v and_o take_v from_o the_o event_n but_o he_o that_o both_o manage_n the_o event_n by_o his_o supreme_a power_n and_o erect_v the_o scheme_n upon_o they_o have_v design_v provide_v and_o contrive_v so_o much_o of_o event_n and_o symbol_n one_o for_o another_o that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a symbol_n that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o of_o such_o or_o such_o event_n that_o while_o it_o look_v as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o reason_n why_o the_o symbol_n go_v no_o further_o because_o the_o event_n go_v no_o further_o it_o be_v even_o yet_o a_o symbol_n through_o the_o admirableness_n of_o this_o mystic_a prophecy_n that_o just_a then_o and_o there_o where_o the_o event_n cease_v the_o cessation_n of_o the_o event_n come_v in_o the_o place_n where_o that_o cessation_n may_v create_v a_o symbol_n and_o this_o can_v be_v no_o way_n thus_o model_v but_o by_o so_o supreme_a a_o author_n who_o be_v not_o only_o the_o artificer_n of_o the_o symbol_n but_o the_o opifex_fw-la the_o absolute_a operator_n of_o the_o event_n themselves_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o live_a creature_n speak_v no_o more_o after_o the_o four_o seal_n be_v not_o only_o because_o there_o be_v but_o four_o live_a creature_n but_o also_o because_o the_o pure_a apostolical_a ministry_n there_o cease_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o soul_n cry_v under_o the_o altar_n be_v not_o only_o because_o the_o martyrdom_n under_o the_o pagan_a empire_n be_v then_o complete_v that_o all_o of_o that_o roll_n may_v join_v in_o that_o appeal_n to_o god_n but_o because_o that_o be_v the_o most_o pure_a and_o excellent_a voice_n the_o church_n have_v then_o leave_v to_o speak_v to_o god_n in_o the_o voice_n of_o martyr_n blood_n that_o when_o they_o be_v dead_a yet_o speak_v for_o after_o this_o the_o church_n speak_v no_o more_o so_o as_o to_o be_v hear_v till_o after_o the_o apostasy_n nor_o do_v the_o four_o live_a creature_n or_o twenty_o four_o elder_n appear_v any_o more_o after_o this_o seal_n till_o then_o c._n 11._o 20._o and_o this_o cry_n be_v time_v just_a before_o that_o amaze_a change_n in_o the_o world_n that_o constantine_n conversion_n produce_v the_o reason_n why_o a_o angel_n voice_n remark_v the_o six_o seal_n except_o only_o as_o that_o so_o wonderful_a event_n of_o the_o desolation_n of_o heathenism_n speak_v itself_o be_v because_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v great_a in_o the_o seal_n of_o so_o many_o of_o his_o servant_n to_o be_v hide_v under_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n then_o that_o very_a conversion_n of_o constantine_n which_o as_o it_o let_v out_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n so_o far_o as_o in_o a_o emblem_n let_v out_o the_o apostasy_n and_o antichristian_a kingdom_n also_o by_o accident_n that_o just_a than_o the_o 144000_o be_v seal_v and_o the_o woman_n take_v her_o flight_n into_o the_o wilderness_n last_o the_o reason_n why_o silence_n and_o prayer_n without_o any_o audible_a voice_n solemnize_v this_o seal_n be_v because_o the_o pure_a service_n be_v reduce_v to_o the_o silent_a private_a prayer_n of_o the_o measure_a temple_n altar_n and_o its_o worshipper_n and_o the_o public_a tammith_n daily_o or_o continual_a pure_a worship_n be_v about_o to_o be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o gentile_n intrusion_n into_o the_o outward_a court_n chap._n 11._o 1._o compare_v with_o chap._n 8._o 1._o yet_o at_o this_o time_n the_o worship_n be_v both_o public_a and_o pure_a in_o god_n account_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o saint_n come_v up_o as_o incense_v before_o he_o and_o the_o prosecution_n the_o kingdom_n open_v in_o all_o the_o seal_n have_v make_v against_o heathenism_n be_v complete_v in_o theodosius_n famous_a victory_n against_o it_o import_v in_o the_o scatter_a altar-incensed_a fire_n of_o he_o and_o all_o christian_n memorialized_a prayer_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o battle_n with_o eugenius_n upon_o which_o follow_v voice_n thundering_n lightning_n and_o a_o earthquake_n the_o usual_a symbol_n in_o this_o prophecy_n of_o all_o the_o acquist_n and_o prevalency_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n so_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v during_o this_o time_n a_o state_n of_o respite_n quiet_v peace_n or_o victoriousness_n and_o greatness_n under_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o precept_n give_v to_o the_o four_o angel_n that_o hold_v the_o four_o wind_n which_o precept_n be_v yet_o in_o full_a force_n and_o virtue_n but_o all_o this_o be_v but_o for_o a_o half-hour_n a_o imperfect_a decurtated_a time_n seize_v and_o surprise_v from_o its_o perfection_n as_o the_o beast_n time_n have_v be_v and_o much_o more_o shall_v be_v yet_o within_o the_o half_n time_n the_o purity_n of_o worship_n be_v surprise_v by_o the_o apostasy_n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n be_v immediate_o in_o preparation_n the_o glory_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o empire_n no_o soon_o vindicate_v from_o paganism_n but_o merge_v in_o antichristianism_n and_o so_o pursue_v by_o vengeance_n that_o punish_v the_o former_a in_o the_o latter_a and_o so_o also_o make_v way_n by_o a_o high_a mysterious_a counsel_n of_o justice_n for_o the_o antichristian_a king_n while_o it_o destroy_v the_o antichristianize_v empire_n now_o the_o just_a time_n of_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o seal_v open_v from_o the_o last_o half_a week_n i_o estimate_v at_o 400_o year_n for_o the_o decency_n of_o the_o type_n of_o seal_a time_n it_o be_v indeed_o give_v in_o no_o numeral_a account_n even_o as_o the_o seven_o thunder_n seal_v be_v ever_o after_o conceal_v and_o under_o the_o name_n and_o explicit_a series_n of_o seven_o thunder_n never_o open_v and_o yet_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v produce_v in_o the_o seven_o voice_n so_o this_o seal_a time_n and_o of_o this_o seven_o seal_n end_v may_v be_v understand_v 1._o by_o compare_v that_o great_a open_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n at_o the_o first_o seal_n in_o the_o apostolical_a preach_v and_o the_o magnificent_a appearance_n of_o it_o in_o the_o six_o seal_n in_o constantine_n conversion_n be_v except_o that_o short_a nubecle_fw-mi that_o little_a cloud_n of_o julian_n apostasy_n all_o along_o the_o christian_a empire_n to_o theodosius_n death_n parallel_n to_o each_o of_o which_o nothing_o appear_v throughout_o the_o time_n either_o in_o common_a or_o ecclesiastic_a history_n wherein_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v concern_v as_o show_v christ_n kingdom_n 2._o by_o compare_v all_o along_o the_o 2300_o eu._n and_o mor._n the_o 75_o of_o the_o word_n go_v forth_o the_o 490_o of_o the_o week_n the_o 1260_o of_o the_o witness_n and_o its_o concurrent_a number_n and_o the_o 75_o of_o the_o voice_n and_o vial_n we_o have_v and_o shall_v far_o find_v the_o seal_a time_n determine_v to_o 400_o year_n and_o end_v at_o 437_o when_o the_o trumpet_n begin_v to_o sound_v which_o ought_v to_o be_v show_v 3._o by_o the_o signature_n of_o the_o half_a time_n of_o the_o church_n purity_n and_o of_o the_o western_a roman_a empire_n duration_n before_o the_o vacancy_n at_o which_o vacancy_n it_o enter_v in_o the_o new_a and_o last_o augustulus_n in_o augustulus_n form_n viz._n the_o bestian_a we_o may_v compute_v the_o seal_v time_n this_o i_o account_v give_v by_o the_o voice_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o
it_o be_v our_o loyalty_n to_o god_n in_o the_o first_o place_n so_o it_o be_v not_o disloyalty_n not_o to_o be_v of_o the_o prince_n religion_n if_o it_o be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n when_o we_o render_v all_o but_o our_o religion_n he_o can_v require_v and_o this_o we_o need_v not_o fear_v to_o do_v because_o we_o can_v lose_v by_o it_o our_o reward_n will_v be_v great_a from_o our_o father_n who_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o as_o christian_n we_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a to_o deny_v it_o but_o in_o religion_n even_o to_o the_o least_o ceremony_n of_o it_o except_o determine_v by_o natural_a decency_n or_o order_n we_o have_v but_o one_o father_n and_o master_n god_n and_o christ_n and_o here_o he_o have_v neither_o vicar_n nor_o vicegerent_n but_o his_o spirit_n in_o his_o word_n we_o shall_v be_v content_a in_o this_o time_n of_o the_o apostasy_n with_o a_o remark_n 3_o mean_v condition_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n not_o to_o seek_v grandeur_n and_o honour_n upon_o that_o title_n if_o god_n cast_v it_o on_o we_o we_o shall_v improve_v it_o to_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o support_n of_o the_o service_n and_o servant_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v the_o beast_n and_o his_o adherent_n that_o carry_v the_o pomp_n and_o greatness_n of_o this_o world_n in_o a_o religious_a equipage_n it_o be_v even_o a_o suspicion_n upon_o what_o be_v high_a and_o stately_a and_o in_o opulency_n by_o christianity_n for_o christ_n witness_n be_v in_o sack-cloch_a it_o be_v the_o time_n of_o the_o delay_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o all_o his_o servant_n be_v with_o he_o in_o the_o patience_n of_o it_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o ravish_v glory_n and_o surprise_v dignity_n before_o the_o time_n but_o to_o stay_v for_o it_o till_o the_o appearance_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o 1260_o day_n of_o mourn_a and_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o wilderness_n be_v not_o yet_o run_v out_o the_o beast_n be_v yet_o in_o power_n the_o tenthliness_n of_o the_o city_n be_v not_o yet_o fall_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o yet_o proclaim_v it_o be_v no_o wonder_n there_o be_v yet_o so_o great_a a_o rent_n and_o division_n remark_n 4_o in_o christian_a religion_n that_o any_o thing_n unreasonable_a or_o a_o frame_n of_o thing_n most_o contrary_a to_o it_o bear_v up_o against_o all_o the_o urgency_n of_o scripture_n and_o reason_n and_o will_v not_o be_v baffle_v nor_o ashamed_a but_o vouch_v high_a and_o pretend_v aloft_o so_o it_o shall_v be_v that_o prophecy_n may_v be_v fulfil_v the_o beast_n and_o his_o adherent_n be_v obstinate_a to_o the_o last_o even_o when_o the_o elevation_n of_o thing_n against_o they_o shall_v be_v much_o high_a than_o now_o when_o evidence_n from_o heaven_n shall_v be_v much_o more_o sensible_a they_o blaspheme_v and_o repent_v not_o christianity_n from_o so_o long_a a_o antiquity_n and_o the_o profession_n of_o it_o shield_n and_o defend_v their_o pretension_n and_o carry_v a_o shade_n over_o they_o even_o wherein_o they_o depart_v from_o it_o and_o most_o apostatise_v this_o keep_v up_o the_o controversy_n and_o perpetuate_v the_o dispute_n but_o within_o a_o time_n a_o short_a time_n it_o will_v be_v decide_v it_o will_v come_v to_o that_o public_a declaration_n of_o the_o witness_n ascension_n of_o their_o song_n before_o the_o throne_n the_o positive_a denunciation_n if_o any_o man_n worship_v the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n he_o shall_v drink_v of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o &c_n &c_n will_v put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o dispute_n revel_v 14._o 9_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v not_o any_o pretence_n stagger_v we_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n ought_v to_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n his_o seat_n then_o must_v be_v found_v in_o a_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n his_o antiquity_n signify_v nothing_o for_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o beast_n of_o forty_o two_o month_n of_o year_n or_o above_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n stand_v his_o pretence_n from_o any_o thing_n say_v or_o do_v before_o that_o 1260_o how_o early_o soever_o if_o it_o be_v not_o find_v evident_a in_o scripture_n be_v of_o no_o avail_n for_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n the_o womb_n out_o of_o which_o he_o come_v be_v at_o work_n and_o in_o a_o mystery_n so_o secret_a so_o cunning_a as_o not_o to_o be_v discern_v by_o many_o good_a man_n and_o all_o to_o bring_v he_o to_o what_o he_o be_v and_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n be_v then_o in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n prince_n continue_v so_o devote_v to_o he_o and_o his_o city_n he_o call_v a_o church_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o yet_o fulfil_v concern_v he_o but_o they_o shall_v consider_v and_o change_v their_o mind_n when_o god_n put_v it_o into_o their_o heart_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v earnest_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o whatever_o their_o persuasion_n be_v now_o that_o god_n will_v continue_v their_o life_n for_o they_o shall_v then_o be_v instrument_n in_o his_o hand_n that_o change_n so_o near_o approach_v shall_v be_v most_o orderly_o most_o regular_o by_o prince_n themselves_o induce_v by_o evidence_n from_o heaven_n of_o a_o extraordinary_a nature_n god_n will_v not_o be_v help_v herein_o but_o by_o his_o own_o vicegerent_n who_o he_o have_v appoint_v who_o he_o have_v ordain_v no_o sedition_n rebellion_n may_v grow_v from_o hence_o it_o be_v to_o be_v quiet_v appease_v and_o even_o root_v up_o by_o this_o doctrine_n even_o as_o it_o be_v utter_o condemn_v by_o it_o for_o god_n will_v appear_v and_o prince_n with_o he_o but_o yet_o on_o this_o nor_o on_o any_o other_o account_n can_v there_o be_v a_o reconciliation_n a_o composition_n with_o this_o false_a state_n of_o christianity_n there_o may_v be_v such_o attempt_n for_o there_o will_v be_v a_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n rise_v anew_o at_o the_o very_a approach_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n before_o the_o end_n yet_o of_o the_o 1260_o day_n it_o appear_v as_o if_o there_o will_v be_v so_o for_o philadelphia_n the_o best_a state_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n before_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n and_o with_o which_o it_o unite_v shall_v receive_v acknowledgement_n from_o such_o a_o synagogue_n that_o christ_n have_v love_v it_o revel_v 3._o 9_o but_o this_o representation_n of_o bestianism_n obstinate_a impenitent_a to_o the_o last_o in_o the_o body_n of_o it_o as_o it_o be_v the_o decisive_a argument_n and_o beyond_o all_o volume_n of_o dispute_n because_o it_o be_v divine_a perpendicular_a downright_a swift_a and_o sudden_a in_o its_o determination_n so_o it_o show_v the_o impossibility_n of_o meet_v halfway_n accept_v term_n to_o any_o good_a effect_n we_o know_v not_o what_o may_v be_v between_o this_o present_a time_n though_o but_o a_o remnant_n and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 1260_o day_n there_o may_v be_v a_o eye_n of_o the_o witness_n kill_v and_o lie_v dead_a three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a a_o return_n of_o former_a darkness_n in_o some_o part_n at_o least_o i_o apprehend_v it_o not_o in_o this_o nation_n yet_o god_n only_o know_v it_o be_v not_o so_o far_o reveal_v so_o far_o as_o i_o have_v find_v but_o i_o hope_v not_o there_o may_v be_v a_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n a_o project_n of_o compound_v this_o i_o more_o fear_n but_o let_v we_o obtain_v and_o maintain_v a_o full_a victory_n over_o the_o image_n the_o mark_n the_o name_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n but_o it_o be_v certain_a it_o be_v but_o ten_o prophetical_a day_n and_o the_o witness_n shall_v not_o only_o every_o where_n rise_v but_o every_o where_o come_v out_o of_o their_o sackcloth_n out_o of_o which_o the_o true_a witness_n of_o god_n be_v not_o where_o yet_o come_v then_o they_o shall_v for_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v it_o so_o many_o certain_a note_n character_n and_o boundary_n of_o time_n as_o i_o have_v draw_v together_o in_o the_o compute_v of_o this_o line_n of_o time_n with_o itself_o and_o that_o be_v give_v as_o assistant_n to_o it_o though_o not_o immediate_o of_o the_o essence_n and_o body_n of_o it_o can_v be_v no_o more_o by_o chance_n than_o many_o picture_n exact_o resemble_v several_a person_n pertain_v to_o a_o family_n and_o find_v in_o the_o mansion_n of_o such_o a_o family_n and_o at_o such_o time_n when_o such_o person_n be_v know_v to_o be_v so_o appertain_v to_o it_o can_v be_v by_o chance_n force_v they_o be_v not_o for_o thing_n themselves_o conspire_v fanciful_a and_o arbitrary_a they_o be_v not_o for_o they_o can_v be_v change_v or_o remove_v at_o pleasure_n nor_o any_o like_o they_o make_v if_o then_o they_o be_v true_o scriptural_a and_o divine_a how_o certain_o shall_v they_o be_v fulfil_v in_o their_o season_n all_o counter-appearance_n can_v signify_v no_o more_o than_o the_o israelite_n severe_a
they_o the_o course_n of_o historical_a time_n and_o its_o event_n all_o along_o so_o curious_o paint_v out_o in_o this_o prophecy_n i_o propose_v this_o method_n of_o progress_n 1._o to_o apply_v to_o the_o seal_n to_o the_o altar_n of_o incense_n and_o the_o temple-worshiper_n to_o the_o witness_n in_o sackcloth_n and_o to_o the_o woman_n in_o the_o wilderness_n the_o note_n of_o history_n correspondent_a to_o their_o beginning_n according_a to_o the_o prophetical_a symbol_n and_o begin_v together_o with_o the_o gentile_n forty_o two_o month_n 2._o from_o this_o epoch_n or_o beginning_n to_o pass_v by_o the_o prophetical_a symbol_n in_o agreement_n with_o the_o historical_a record_n to_o the_o beast_n forty_o two_o month_n and_o to_o demonstrate_v their_o epoch_n continuance_n and_o period_n 3._o by_o the_o same_o support_v from_o prophecy_n and_o history_n to_o pass_v to_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o five_o and_o five_o month_n and_o the_o space_n of_o time_n thereby_o denote_v grant_v to_o the_o locust_n revel_v 9_o 5._o 10._o 4._o within_o which_o space_n the_o beginning_n of_o intimate_a time_n the_o reason_n of_o it_o and_o its_o whole_a duration_n will_v fall_v under_o examination_n and_o its_o 666_o by_o prophecy_n and_o history_n 5._o about_o the_o midst_n of_o intimate_a time_n the_o hour_n day_n month_n and_o year_n of_o that_o vast_a army_n of_o the_o horseman_n will_v encounter_v our_o enquiry_n and_o the_o whole_a duration_n require_v to_o be_v state_v from_o their_o beginning_n to_o the_o kill_v the_o three_o part_n of_o man_n or_o the_o end_n of_o that_o space_n of_o time_n but_o not_o of_o that_o power_n figure_v by_o they_o nor_o of_o the_o woe_n they_o bring_v 6._o at_o the_o end_n of_o intimate_a time_n and_o after_o the_o kill_v the_o three_o part_n of_o man_n we_o shall_v be_v bring_v upon_o the_o time_n of_o the_o aforesaid_a solemn_a oath_n that_o time_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o which_o will_v carry_v we_o to_o the_o end_n of_o this_o whole_a line_n and_o wind_v we_o up_o with_o its_o self_n and_o by_o every_o one_o of_o these_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o line_n of_o this_o black_a time_n must_v end_v at_o 1697_o as_o it_o begin_v 437._o all_o which_o by_o the_o guidance_n of_o the_o prophecy_n itself_o and_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o it_o will_v assure_v we_o by_o the_o most_o illustrious_a and_o stately_a product_n of_o that_o whole_a time_n and_o of_o great_a concernment_n to_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o these_o 1260_o year_n be_v a_o most_o definite_a space_n of_o so_o many_o and_o no_o few_o nor_o more_o in_o number_n and_o that_o see_v they_o must_v be_v either_o natural_a or_o prophetical_a time_n according_a to_o the_o standard_n of_o a_o day_n for_o a_o year_n for_o the_o scripture-register_n know_v no_o other_o sort_n of_o time_n nor_o can_v any_o instance_n be_v give_v of_o any_o other_o therefore_o they_o must_v be_v prophetical_a day_n or_o day_n of_o year_n and_o month_n of_o year_n since_o the_o event_n destine_v by_o god_n to_o they_o be_v so_o much_o too_o great_a and_o large_a for_o natural_a time_n in_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o in_o the_o prophetical_a descyphar_n that_o no_o more_o than_o a_o year_n can_v be_v a_o year_n and_o yet_o be_v crowd_v up_o within_o a_o month_n a_o day_n or_o hour_n no_o more_o can_v those_o long_a tract_n of_o time-some_a action_n be_v fetter_v within_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a the_o high_a amount_v of_o those_o character_n of_o time_n if_o natural_o understand_v without_o a_o contradiction_n in_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o thing_n sect_n v._o wherein_o it_o be_v prove_v the_o seal_v so_o intermatch_v with_o the_o inner_a temple_n and_o altar_n measure_v with_o the_o witness_n in_o sackcloth_n and_o with_o the_o woman_n in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o the_o three_o first_o trumpet_n in_o which_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o seal_v enter_v intermatch_v with_o the_o gentile_n tread_v the_o outer_a court_n with_o the_o dragon_n persecution_n of_o the_o woman_n at_o her_o first_o flight_n into_o the_o wilderness_n must_v according_a to_o history_n begin_v the_o whole_a time_n time_n half_a time_n the_o gentile_n forty_o two_o month_n the_o 1260_o of_o the_o 1290_o day_n when_o the_o daily_a service_n dan_n 12._o 11._o be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o witness_n and_o the_o woman_n 1260_o day_n altogether_o at_o 437_o and_o so_o move_v forward_o till_o the_o four_o trumpet_n when_o the_o beast_n forty_o two_o month_n begin_v at_o 475._o that_o i_o may_v settle_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o 1260_o day_n etc._n etc._n aright_o the_o content_n of_o this_o section_n must_v be_v answer_v and_o make_v good_a in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o discourse_n within_o it_o i_o must_v endeavour_v these_o five_o thing_n then_o to_o attain_v that_o end_n by_o these_o inquiry_n 1._o how_o far_o the_o seven_o seal_n have_v bring_v down_o time_n from_o enquiry_n 1_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n to_o the_o first_o of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n must_v be_v diligent_o inquire_v and_o settle_v see_v one_o follow_v on_o the_o other_o 2._o the_o importance_n of_o the_o seal_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n after_o the_o seven_o seal_n open_v and_o the_o conspire_v of_o that_o symbol_n with_o the_o retirement_n of_o the_o worshipper_n within_o the_o temple_n the_o witness_n under_o sackcloth_n and_o the_o woman_n into_o the_o wilderness_n must_v be_v determine_v and_o settle_v for_o the_o sealing_n efficacy_n begin_v all_o even_o the_o very_a trumpet_n which_o can_v not_o sound_v till_o the_o seal_n over_o 3._o the_o scope_n and_o intention_n of_o the_o trumpet_n be_v to_o be_v careful_o estimate_v in_o the_o strict_a attention_n to_o the_o emblem_n itself_o and_o see_v the_o first_o four_o and_o the_o six_o display_v upon_o three_o part_n of_o man_n what_o three_o part_n of_o man_n it_o be_v they_o play_v upon_o must_v be_v find_v for_o the_o trumpet_n play_v upon_o that_o three_o of_o man_n run_v along_o the_o whole_a line_n we_o be_v upon_o and_o why_o all_o this_o play_n upon_o a_o christian_a empire_n 4._o it_o must_v be_v due_o researched_a what_o the_o symbol_n of_o the_o three_o first_o trumpet_n convey_v to_o our_o notice_n to_o what_o time_n history_n direct_v we_o that_o we_o may_v find_v their_o effect_n 5._o it_o must_v be_v just_o state_v what_o the_o dragon_n mean_v and_o how_o his_o persecution_n of_o the_o woman_n can_v agree_v with_o the_o explanation_n of_o the_o trumpet_n see_v both_o must_v be_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o line_n because_o then_o be_v the_o woman_n first_o flight_n into_o the_o wilderness_n which_o be_v at_o the_o first_o of_o the_o 1260_o day_n now_o if_o all_o these_o can_v be_v rational_o according_a to_o this_o prophecy_n and_o the_o argument_n of_o history_n resolve_v so_o as_o to_o unite_v with_o the_o gentile_n forty_o two_o month_n and_o all_o of_o they_o to_o determine_v the_o beginning_n of_o this_o line_n to_o be_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o trumpet_n sound_v and_o both_o to_o be_v at_o ann._n dom._n 437_o and_o to_o reach_v in_o the_o three_o first_o trumpet_n to_o the_o beast_n rise_v at_o 475_o then_o that_o will_v be_v do_v which_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v for_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n the_o line_n must_v end_v at_o 1697._o i_o begin_v with_o the_o first_o viz._n to_o inquire_v how_o far_o the_o seven_o seal_n open_v have_v bring_v down_o time_n from_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n to_o the_o first_o of_o the_o trumpet_n sound_v for_o the_o trumpet_n must_v needs_o follow_v upon_o the_o seal_n as_o be_v most_o apparent_a now_o since_o it_o be_v very_o evident_a the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n begin_v the_o whole_a course_n of_o apocalyptical_a time_n i_o know_v not_o what_o can_v be_v more_o demonstrative_a of_o any_o point_n of_o time_n than_o to_o find_v the_o prophecy_n by_o the_o most_o lively_a picture_n and_o emblem_n to_o draw_v the_o course_n of_o event_n from_o a_o time_n give_v as_o from_o the_o resurrection_n ann._n dom_n vul._n 33_o to_o a_o time_n give_v viz._n to_o the_o trumpet_n suppose_v to_o be_v ann._n dom._n vul._n 437._o that_o be_v from_o the_o resurrection_n the_o apocalyptical_a epoch_n or_o time_n begin_v 404_o year_n now_o what_o can_v more_o congruous_o and_o even_o undeniable_o follow_v the_o resurrection_n than_o christ_n ride_v out_o in_o his_o majesty_n and_o glory_n in_o the_o universal_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n by_o a_o apostolical_a ministry_n and_o thereby_o claim_v his_o kingdom_n according_a to_o the_o first_o seal_n open_v what_o follow_v more_o uninterrupted_o upon_o that_o than_o that_o warlike_a set_v of_o emperor_n and_o upon_o the_o red_a horse_n of_o war_n arm_v with_o a_o great_a sword_n give_v they_o viz._n vespasian_n titus_n trajan_n hadrian_n respect_v especial_o
still_o preserve_v on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o the_o imperial_a torch_n however_o flame_v yet_o fall_v into_o the_o water_n will_v be_v soon_o quench_v while_o a_o burn_a mountain_n resist_v the_o contrary_a element_n so_o rome_n live_v but_o the_o emperor_n die_v rome_n burn_v as_o a_o mountain_n in_o the_o sea_n and_o though_o it_o turn_v the_o water_n into_o blood_n yet_o it_o survive_v to_o ride_v aloft_o upon_o a_o new_a universality_n the_o flame_v taper_n do_v hurt_v while_o it_o flame_v but_o fall_v into_o water_n must_v needs_o be_v short-lived_a and_o it_o be_v to_o die_v that_o another_o sort_n of_o principality_n may_v succeed_v it_o upon_o which_o rome_n grandeur_n a_o city_n reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n may_v have_v the_o guaranty_n of_o prophecy_n even_o as_o of_o providence_n to_o secure_v it_o for_o a_o long_a time_n than_o by_o all_o computation_n it_o have_v make_v the_o epoch_n of_o vrbs_fw-la condita_fw-la or_o it_o have_v be_v build_v i_o be_o yet_o to_o state_n just_o and_o more_o at_o large_a what_o the_o dragon_n enquiry_n 5_o mean_n and_o how_o his_o persecution_n of_o the_o woman_n can_v agree_v with_o the_o explanation_n of_o the_o trumpet_n see_v both_o must_v be_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o line_n because_o then_o be_v the_o woman_n first_o flight_n into_o the_o wilderness_n when_o the_o dragon_n persecute_v she_o from_o whence_o arise_v these_o two_o doubt_n how_o can_v these_o trumpet_n that_o be_v the_o alarm_n of_o divine_a doubt_n 1_o judgement_n and_o displeasure_n upon_o the_o antichristianize_v empire_n as_o be_v before_o declare_v be_v the_o dragon_n persecution_n of_o the_o woman_n when_o the_o beast_n or_o his_o gentile_n have_v the_o whole_a time_n doubt_n 2_o time_n half_a time_n and_o so_o the_o 1260_o of_o the_o woman_n wilderness-state_n under_o their_o domination_n and_o tyranny_n do_v not_o the_o dragon_n persecution_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o then_o of_o the_o seed_n contradict_v the_o assertion_n of_o this_o time_n to_o the_o beast_n that_o these_o two_o doubt_n may_v be_v substantial_o resolve_v and_o so_o as_o to_o clear_v the_o whole_a progress_n of_o this_o time_n with_o relation_n to_o the_o beast_n we_o must_v understand_v aright_o concern_v the_o dragon_n for_o a_o mistake_n in_o that_o confound_v the_o whole_a order_n of_o the_o prophecy_n the_o dragon_n then_o as_o it_o be_v present_v revel_v 12._o 3._o with_o seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n have_v a_o double_a meaning_n one_o proper_a to_o it_o as_o the_o six_o or_o imperial_a head_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n which_o headship_n be_v always_o account_v to_o the_o whole_a roman_a beast_n in_o this_o prophecy_n but_o when_o the_o christian_a emperor_n arise_v that_o head_n become_v wound_v and_o by_o degree_n the_o power_n and_o conduct_n of_o it_o transmigrate_v from_o the_o six_o to_o the_o seven_o head_n and_o eight_o king_n as_o be_v to_o be_v show_v upon_o the_o symbol_n of_o the_o beast_n but_o in_o all_o this_o it_o be_v of_o great_a influence_n to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o this_o prophecy_n to_o be_v know_v there_o be_v a_o more_o abstract_a signification_n of_o draconism_n or_o of_o the_o dragon_n viz._n the_o old_a serpent_n deceive_v the_o nation_n into_o the_o worship_n of_o himself_o under_o the_o disguise_n of_o those_o many_o idol_n god_n and_o demon_n they_o sacrifice_v and_o do_v service_n to_o when_o therefore_o this_o idolatry_n and_o demonolatry_n be_v demolish_v by_o constantine_n and_o the_o christian_a emperor_n and_o the_o only_a true_a god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o kingdom_n acknowledge_v at_o the_o head_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n satan_n that_o old_a serpent_n be_v cast_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o christ_n the_o manly_a birth_n catch_v up_o thither_o satan_n therefore_o as_o a_o intelligence_n within_o at_o the_o head_n and_o spring_n of_o all_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o this_o dragon_n revel_v 12._o 7._o the_o roman_a caesar_n as_o have_v the_o imperial_a monarchick_a government_n of_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o world_n at_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n so_o along_o in_o the_o first_o time_n of_o christianity_n lay_v indeed_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o nation_n and_o people_n and_o watch_v all_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o devour_v the_o manly_a birth_n that_o be_v to_o rule_v the_o nation_n with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n and_o who_o have_v right_a to_o do_v so_o at_o his_o resurrection_n and_o all_o along_o since_o but_o at_o the_o time_n this_o cesarian_a dragon_n be_v act_v by_o that_o satan_n that_o invisible_a spiritual_a dragon_n and_o his_o angel_n who_o make_v war_n against_o christ_n who_o carry_v the_o cesarian_a dragon_n in_o a_o perpetual_a hostility_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o also_o most_o devote_a to_o idolatry_n while_o therefore_o devil_n be_v worship_v under_o those_o several_a name_n of_o jupiter_n mars_n etc._n etc._n and_o a_o idolatrous_a power_n be_v at_o the_o head_n of_o the_o roman_a power_n satan_n be_v account_v in_o heaven_n and_o the_o rather_o so_o because_o the_o title_n of_o satan_n be_v not_o reckon_v pure_o of_o fraud_n and_o usurpation_n but_o by_o permission_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o even_o in_o regard_n of_o justice_n and_o divine_a displeasure_n against_o the_o apostasy_n of_o humane_a nature_n as_o it_o be_v of_o commission_n so_o that_o he_o be_v overcome_v and_o cast_v down_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n as_o the_o true_a meritorious_a cause_n appease_v that_o wrath_n satisfy_v that_o justice_n expiate_v the_o world_n by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o testimony_n as_o the_o grand_a instrumental_a cause_n and_o by_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o christian_n who_o love_v not_o their_o life_n unto_o death_n as_o a_o subordinate_a dispose_n of_o god_n in_o honour_n to_o his_o justice_n against_o the_o horrible_a degeneracy_n of_o mankind_n from_o hence_o whatever_o power_n act_v by_o satan_n to_o a_o aspire_a to_o a_o supreme_a residency_n in_o the_o four_o or_o roman_a monarchy_n in_o the_o day_n of_o which_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v foretell_v to_o be_v set_v up_o and_o of_o all_o right_a aught_o to_o have_v be_v so_o speaking_z as_o to_z the_o duty_n and_o obligation_n of_o all_o mankind_n because_o of_o his_o sovereign_a resurrection_n after_o his_o death_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o himself_o for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o then_o the_o roman_a monarchy_n be_v the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o oecumene_n or_o habitable_a earth_n in_o symbol_n of_o prophecy_n whatever_o power_n therefore_o do_v not_o then_o acknowledge_v that_o kingdom_n nor_o that_o truth_n of_o christianity_n any_o way_n either_o seat_v in_o or_o attempt_v that_o monarchy_n be_v under_o a_o character_n of_o draconick_a the_o notion_n of_o which_o come_v into_o especial_a date_n since_o that_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o right_n thereby_o to_o a_o universal_a monarchy_n at_o which_o time_n the_o roman_a cesareate_n arisen_a to_o that_o universal_a monarchy_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o more_o public_a notice_n of_o the_o right_n of_o christ_n inspire_v by_o satan_n with_o a_o draconick_a subtlety_n and_o watchfulness_n wait_v to_o devour_v that_o princely_a birth_n of_o which_o pharaoh_n cruelty_n to_o god_n typical_a first-born_a lie_v as_o a_o dragon_n in_o the_o egyptian_a nile_n be_v a_o type_n and_o be_v therefore_o by_o the_o most_o notable_a signancy_n of_o the_o symbol_n invest_v with_o the_o draconick_a title_n but_o when_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o jesus_n as_o christ_n and_o lord_n be_v make_v by_o the_o christian_n roman_n emperor_n constantine_n and_o his_o successor_n christ_n be_v then_o in_o eminent_a type_n catch_v up_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n never_o to_o be_v dethrone_v as_o we_o see_v he_o be_v not_o to_o this_o day_n notwithstanding_o the_o combat_n of_o the_o dragon_n and_o his_o angel_n by_o julian_n argobastes_n the_o roman_a senate_n and_o other_o with_o michael_z and_o his_o angel_n but_o for_o all_o this_o the_o woman_n the_o church_n be_v persecute_v by_o the_o roll_a of_o the_o barbarous_a nation_n upon_o that_o empire_n who_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n at_o the_o first_o and_o so_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o their_o invasion_n upon_o the_o right_n of_o the_o empire_n as_o christ_n and_o on_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o eminent_a in_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n and_o have_v produce_v the_o christian_a emperor_n be_v both_o as_o design_v by_o satan_n and_o repute_v by_o god_n a_o draconick_a persecution_n of_o the_o woman_n even_o as_o after_o the_o mahometan_a flood_n which_o come_v out_o of_o the_o dragon_n mouth_n to_o have_v swallow_v up_o christianity_n and_o that_o empire_n together_o as_o it_o be_v wherever_o it_o can_v be_v find_v be_v on_o the_o very_a
beast_n that_o have_v forty_o two_o month_n determine_v to_o he_o and_o though_o there_o need_v nothing_o to_o make_v that_o good_a but_o to_o take_v the_o two_o chap_n c._n 13._o and_o c._n 17._o of_o the_o apocal._n and_o to_o write_v down_o all_o the_o particular_n of_o agreement_n between_o those_o two_o beast_n and_o it_o will_v be_v impossible_a for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o think_a mind_n to_o doubt_v of_o their_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o but_o i_o will_v only_o insist_v upon_o the_o former_a argument_n in_o this_o matter_n that_o beast_n that_o be_v so_o destroy_v as_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o c._n 17._o be_v to_o be_v destroy_v must_v needs_o according_a to_o the_o former_a argument_n be_v the_o same_o beast_n but_o the_o beast_n that_o have_v forty_o two_o month_n determine_v to_o his_o continuunce_n c._n 13._o v._n 5._o have_v such_o a_o destruction_n affix_v to_o he_o as_o the_o beast_n c._n 17._o have_v for_o who_o can_v assume_v the_o effrontery_n or_o boldness_n to_o deny_v that_o the_o beast_n c._n 19_o who_o be_v take_v and_o cast_v into_o the_o lake_n v._o 20._o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o beast_n c._n 17._o and_o the_o beast_n c._n 13._o have_v this_o very_a same_o destruction_n foretell_v to_o he_o for_o he_o be_v to_o be_v take_v and_o to_o go_v into_o that_o eternal_a captivity_n of_o the_o lake_n with_o his_o false_a prophet_n inseparable_a from_o he_o according_a to_o v._o 10._o and_o his_o ten_o crown_a horn_n or_o whole_a circle_n of_o king_n be_v to_o be_v kill_v with_o the_o sword_n of_o christ_n mouth_n c._n 19_o v._n 21._o compare_v with_o ch_z 13._o v._n 10._o he_o that_o lead_v into_o captivity_n shall_v go_v etc._n etc._n and_o he_o that_o kill_v with_o the_o sword_n etc._n etc._n now_o christ_n captivation_n and_o kill_v be_v such_o as_o argue_v divine_a justice_n and_o power_n and_o such_o be_v that_o declare_v c._n 19_o 20._o the_o apostle_n john_n have_v declare_v that_o so_o obstinate_a unyield_a bar_n to_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n be_v reveal_v still_o in_o his_o time_n as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n most_o emphatical_o speak_v signify_v the_o impossibility_n of_o his_o come_v till_o that_o his_o own_o proper_a time_n now_o the_o occasion_n of_o that_o great_a apostolical_a paragraph_n be_v a_o expectation_n of_o a_o sudden_a appearance_n of_o the_o 2._o 2_o thess_n 2._o glory_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n this_o very_a kingdom_n of_o which_o we_o be_v now_o speak_v which_o be_v the_o great_a expectation_n of_o the_o apostle_n till_o they_o be_v better_o instruct_v and_o of_o other_o christian_n after_o they_o upon_o a_o general_a but_o not_o particular_a apprehension_n of_o scripture_n prophecy_n for_o that_o this_o day_n be_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n there_o be_v no_o sense_n for_o in_o those_o lightsome_a day_n before_o the_o apostasy_n see_v all_o the_o prophecy_n be_v big_a with_o a_o glorious_a state_n of_o christianity_n in_o this_o world_n to_o this_o the_o apost_n for_o their_o information_n and_o of_o after_o age_n much_o more_o speak_v punctual_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v expect_v so_o soon_o and_o do_v most_o vehement_o obtestate_a by_o the_o very_a come_n of_o christ_n and_o our_o gather_n unto_o he_o against_o the_o expectation_n for_o say_v he_o there_o must_v be_v a_o apostasy_n first_o and_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n must_v be_v reveal_v but_o that_o must_v be_v in_o his_o own_o proper_a time_n and_o not_o before_o for_o there_o be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o person_n withhold_v and_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o effectual_a thing_n withhold_v or_o each_o of_o these_o take_v such_o fast_a hold_n of_o their_o proper_a space_n and_o time_n that_o the_o bestian_a prince_n can_v come_v forward_o till_o they_o by_o go_v off_o let_v go_v their_o hold_n and_o then_o shall_v be_v reveal_v that_o lawless_a one_o that_o man_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v a_o exposition_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d when_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o body_n of_o successor_n so_o this_o be_v the_o apostle_n sense_n the_o day_n of_o christ_n viz._n of_o his_o glory_n and_o kingdom_n can_v come_v till_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n come_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n come_v indeed_o out_o of_o the_o apostasy_n as_o out_o of_o a_o womb_n but_o as_o no_o birth_n can_v so_o he_o can_v come_v till_o his_o own_o time_n satan_n be_v eager_a enough_o every_o thing_n work_v to_o it_o as_o fast_o as_o it_o can_v the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n be_v now_o already_o at_o this_o very_a moment_n at_o work_n but_o every_o thing_n that_o god_n have_v ordain_v will_v hold_v its_o own_o it_o be_v own_o time_n it_o be_v own_o place_n and_o such_o a_o hold_v thing_n there_o be_v and_o such_o a_o hold_v person_n there_o be_v that_o possess_v and_o fill_v that_o time_n and_o place_n thus_o far_o the_o apostle_n paul_n go_v in_o his_o epistle_n so_o far_o he_o be_v order_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o go_v and_o no_o far_o the_o rest_n he_o refer_v to_o former_a personal_a discourse_n now_o whatever_o prudential_a reason_n there_o may_v be_v of_o say_v no_o more_o the_o great_a reason_n be_v the_o holy_a dictate_v spirit_n order_v no_o more_o but_o that_o all_o scripture_n may_v be_v search_v and_o compare_v holy_a writer_n say_v so_o much_o in_o one_o place_n so_o much_o in_o another_o so_o much_o one_o holy_a writer_n say_v so_o much_o more_o be_v say_v by_o another_o by_o every_o one_o part_v the_o harmony_n be_v make_v up_o the_o apostle_n john_n therefore_o speak_v as_o i_o have_v prove_v of_o the_o same_o great_a matter_n and_o aim_v at_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o grand_a scope_n of_o all_o prophecy_n declare_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o come_v because_o there_o be_v a_o unalterable_a succession_n determine_v by_o god_n before_o that_o kingdom_n there_o be_v seven_o king_n five_o of_o they_o he_o give_v in_o the_o lump_n because_o prophecy_n be_v not_o concern_v in_o they_o or_o in_o the_o manner_n or_o order_n of_o their_o succession_n they_o be_v only_o a_o character_n of_o the_o monarchy_n a_o distinctive_a of_o the_o four_o beast_n by_o its_o seven_o head_n or_o form_n of_o government_n in_o a_o succession_n as_o king_n signify_v dan._n 7._o but_o in_o three_o of_o they_o the_o prophecy_n then_o in_o motion_n by_o the_o apostle_n john_n be_v high_o interest_v the_o first_o be_v then_o and_o it_o be_v in_o its_o course_n according_a to_o five_o of_o the_o seven_o seal_n the_o seven_o king_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v it_o be_v not_o very_o far_o off_o comparative_o but_o it_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o come_v it_o be_v to_o come_v in_o the_o six_o seal_n and_o when_o it_o come_v there_o be_v a_o necessity_n upon_o he_o he_o must_v continue_v by_o the_o same_o comparativeness_n but_o a_o short_a space_n viz._n during_o only_o the_o time_n of_o the_o six_o and_o seven_o seal_n now_o this_o seven_o the_o spirit_n be_v industrious_a to_o assure_v we_o he_o be_v the_o christian_a emperor_n though_o he_o be_v a_o king_n of_o that_o great_a city_n and_o empire_n yet_o he_o pertain_v not_o to_o the_o beast_n indeed_o there_o be_v a_o declination_n to_o the_o apostasy_n in_o his_o time_n but_o the_o church_n be_v yet_o pure_a all_o those_o seal_n as_o appear_v by_o they_o it_o appear_v too_o it_o be_v decline_v the_o apostasy_n draw_v near_o a_o decline_a from_o one_o degree_n to_o another_o there_o have_v be_v from_o the_o first_o operation_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n form_v the_o antichristian_a prince_n no_o with_o great_a curiosity_n in_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n where_o no_o eye_n see_v the_o way_n of_o the_o sathanick_n spirit_n but_o he_o before_o who_o hell_n and_o destruction_n have_v no_o cover_v however_o this_o christian_a emperor_n be_v none_o of_o the_o head_n but_o wound_v the_o pagan_a six_o draconick_a head_n the_o beast_n he_o be_v the_o eight_o and_o be_v of_o the_o seven_o seven_o what_o but_o head_n clear_o join_v this_o vision_n with_o the_o seven_o head_n of_o chap._n 13._o he_o that_o as_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n go_v into_o perdition_n i_o say_v again_o go_v into_o perdition_n that_o perdition_n just_a before_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o have_v no_o successor_n but_o christ_n consume_v he_o now_o this_o succession_n stand_v firm_a god_n himself_o have_v fix_v it_o as_o than_o no_o prince_n can_v succeed_v till_o the_o former_a be_v avaunt_v in_o so_o exact_a a_o succession_n one_o can_v crowd_v out_o another_o no_o more_o than_o one_o month_n or_o a_o day_n follow_v can_v crowd_v out_o the_o precedent_n but_o when_o any_o go_v off_o the_o next_o succeed_v immediate_o there_o can_v
be_v no_o vacuity_n rex_fw-la nunquam_fw-la moritur_fw-la where_o god_n hold_v the_o succession_n and_o its_o law_n firm_a and_o so_o it_o be_v to_o the_o very_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n just_o then_o when_o the_o christian_a emperor_n decease_v that_o bestian_a emperor_n succeed_v and_o that_o be_v indisputable_o at_o 475_o and_o then_o his_o forty_o two_o month_n of_o duration_n succeed_v and_o it_o be_v a_o large_a time_n as_o prophecy_n draw_v they_o out_o and_o they_o be_v still_o current_a they_o must_v have_v be_v yet_o a_o long_a time_n ago_o begin_v for_o there_o be_v the_o six_o king_n in_o be_v when_o the_o apostle_n write_v signify_v his_o time_n then_o in_o spend_v the_o seven_o have_v not_o long_a time_n that_o end_n of_o thing_n the_o apostle_n declare_v ch._n 18._o c._n 19_o c._n 20._o c._n 21._o be_v beyond_o all_o controversy_n upon_o due_a yea_o but_o small_a consideration_n not_o yet_o come_v therefore_o this_o eight_o king_n must_v have_v be_v long_o upon_o the_o throne_n and_o now_o near_o the_o end_n of_o his_o forty_o two_o month_n for_o he_o come_v at_o the_o very_a first_o of_o they_o he_o come_v then_o though_o as_o a_o infant_n prince_n a_o prince_n as_o in_o the_o cradle_n yet_o than_o he_o come_v humane_a history_n be_v not_o more_o competent_a to_o declare_v the_o time_n when_o antichrist_n be_v bear_v than_o the_o jew_n can_v pronounce_v aright_o when_o the_o christ_n be_v bear_v yet_o some_o choose_a observer_n there_o be_v of_o the_o one_o and_o of_o the_o other_o some_o or_o alarm_a indication_n the_o father_n jerom_n sound_v it_o aloud_o or_o rather_o by_o inspiration_n before_o hand_n proclaim_v it_o but_o god_n have_v judge_v it_o he_o have_v declare_v it_o and_o there_o can_v be_v no_o incertainty_n in_o it_o when_o the_o short-lived_a christian_a emperor_n and_o their_o empire_n die_v in_o the_o west_n than_o it_o be_v the_o true_a seat_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v at_o seven_o head_a seven_o hill_v rome_n be_v by_o a_o wonderful_a operation_n of_o providence_n quit_v by_o the_o dragon_n to_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o christian_a emperor_n reside_v elsewhere_o most_o for_o still_o that_o be_v the_o metropolis_n of_o the_o bestian_a empire_n constantinople_n do_v but_o borrow_v the_o name_n by_o a_o secret_a of_o providence_n of_o nova_n roma_n as_o useful_a for_o some_o type_n of_o prophecy_n when_o the_o christian_a western_a empire_n be_v cessated_a then_o the_o eight_o king_n succeed_v his_o forty_o two_o month_n than_o begin_v i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o second_o head_n of_o this_o discourse_n the_o head_n 2_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n must_v come_v immediate_o after_o the_o beast_n forty_o two_o month_n end_v the_o law_n of_o the_o succession_n require_v it_o it_o must_v be_v then_o immediate_o proclaim_v it_o do_v not_o appear_v all_o at_o once_o no_o kingdom_n do_v so_o but_o its_o preparation_n be_v seventy_o five_o year_n so_o great_a so_o glorious_a a_o empire_n so_o just_a so_o even_o and_o cubical_a in_o its_o thousand_o year_n must_v have_v a_o honourable_a preparation_n and_o it_o be_v but_o short_a in_o comparison_n during_o this_o time_n all_o sort_n of_o warning_n be_v give_v by_o the_o seven_o thunder_n unseal_v revel_v 14._o all_o kind_n of_o justice_n do_v upon_o offender_n by_o the_o vial_n c._n 16._o the_o beast_n have_v a_o kind_n of_o die_a life_n as_o a_o outdated_a usurper_n not_o yet_o execute_v but_o that_o have_v lose_v his_o usurp_a empire_n and_o then_o lake_v for_o ever_o this_o succession_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v date_v by_o prophecy_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 1260_o day_n for_o then_o the_o witness_n rise_v go_v out_o of_o their_o sackcloth_n be_v array_v in_o a_o white_a cloud_n ascend_v to_o heaven_n they_o can_v ascend_v in_o sackcloth_n but_o for_o 1260_o day_n sackcloth_n be_v their_o shroud_n it_o be_v then_o certain_a the_o 1260_o day_n end_v it_o be_v certain_a also_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v then_o proclaim_v for_o when_o the_o second_o woe_n past_o away_o the_o three_o come_v quick_o no_o delay_n and_o the_o three_o woe_n trumpet_n bring_v it_o and_o the_o first_o sound_n or_o report_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n therefore_o last_o the_o forty_o two_o month_n must_v end_v with_o the_o 1260_o day_n for_o christ_n abate_v nothing_o of_o they_o by_o his_o kingdom_n overhasty_o as_o be_v to_o be_v show_v and_o the_o beast_n be_v to_o have_v so_o many_o for_o his_o reign_n the_o 1260_o day_n and_o the_o forty_o two_o month_n end_v together_o head_n 3_o and_o the_o forty_o two_o month_n begin_v at_o 475_o they_o must_v be_v adjust_v one_o to_o the_o other_o as_o one_o be_v time_n of_o the_o sun_n the_o other_o as_o time_n of_o the_o moon_n for_o as_o in_o all_o language_n and_o part_n of_o the_o world_n days_n must_v and_o do_v signify_v most_o proper_o the_o time_n measure_v by_o the_o sun_n so_o in_o the_o eastern_a and_o most_o especial_o the_o jewish_a and_o scripture_n language_n month_n signify_v only_o and_o sole_o the_o time_n as_o measure_v by_o the_o moon_n and_o be_v call_v novitates_fw-la newness_n or_o time_n measure_v by_o each_o new_a congress_n of_o the_o moon_n with_o the_o sun_n or_o new_a moon_n so_o that_o however_o another_o way_n of_o speak_v have_v prevail_v with_o we_o a_o month_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v as_o improper_a as_o a_o day_n of_o the_o night_n or_o a_o day_n measure_v by_o the_o moon_n so_o that_o if_o word_n can_v signify_v as_o they_o be_v always_o in_o scripture_n use_v to_o signify_v month_n must_v signify_v time_n according_a to_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o further_o as_o have_v be_v already_o show_v the_o symbol_n be_v of_o the_o peculiar_a use_n in_o this_o prophecy_n to_o semble_fw-fr time_n of_o the_o night_n of_o the_o moon_n that_o the_o true_a church_n have_v under_o its_o foot_n and_o as_o shall_v be_v more_o see_v in_o a_o great_a remark_n upon_o the_o mahometan_a moon_n because_o therefore_o day_n month_n year_n as_o they_o be_v within_o this_o line_n of_o time_n must_v all_o lie_v within_o time_n time_n half_a time_n and_o equal_a 1260_o day_n or_o year_n there_o be_v twice_o forty_o two_o month_n that_o knit_v one_o within_o another_o will_v supply_v the_o shortness_n to_o 1260_o day_n or_o year_n of_o the_o forty_o two_o month_n either_o of_o the_o gentile_n end_v thirty_o eight_o year_n soon_o or_o those_o of_o the_o beast_n begin_v thirty_o eight_o year_n late_a than_o those_o 1260_o day_n and_o as_o the_o moon_n can_v be_v no_o moon_n if_o there_o be_v no_o sun_n to_o lend_v it_o light_n so_o the_o sun_n on_o a_o body_n prepare_v and_o move_v to_o it_o as_o the_o moon_n cast_v a_o light_n like_o that_o of_o the_o moon_n certain_o and_o without_o fail_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n there_o can_v be_v no_o antichristian_a month_n or_o church_n if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o true_a church_n and_o its_o seed_n the_o witness_n clothe_v with_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n all_o those_o 1260_o year_n which_o cast_v those_o month_n and_o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o body_n as_o the_o antichristian_a church_n move_v to_o the_o christian_a church_n as_o that_o do_v it_o must_v needs_o derive_v month_n from_o its_o day_n equal_a one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o it_o be_v most_o apparent_a that_o wave_a scripture_n round_a number_n unto_o the_o exactness_n of_o considerable_o less_o than_o a_o year_n difference_n the_o time_n of_o forty_o two_o prophetical_a month_n adjust_v by_o the_o strict_a accountant_a to_o the_o time_n of_o 1260_o prophetical_a day_n measure_v by_o the_o moon_n be_v motion_n from_o one_o new_a conjunction_n with_o the_o sun_n to_o another_o will_v be_v as_o 1222_o year_n to_o 1260_o year_n so_o that_o if_o the_o forty_o two_o month_n of_o the_o beast_n begin_v at_o 475_o the_o 1260_o day_n begin_v at_o 437_o they_o will_v both_o end_v necessary_o at_o 1697_o which_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v show_v so_o great_a a_o exactness_n so_o sure_o argue_v the_o true_a calculalation_n of_o this_o line_n i_o hope_v all_o will_v agree_v can_v be_v bychance_o i_o request_v then_o i_o say_v a_o strictness_n of_o account_n which_o to_o avoid_v both_o longsomness_n and_o perplexity_n in_o this_o discourse_n i_o do_v not_o give_v but_o by_o so_o strict_a account_n two_o mistake_n will_v be_v escape_v which_o may_v arise_v from_o a_o general_a apprehension_n of_o this_o matter_n for_o it_o will_v then_o be_v find_v the_o calculation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v make_v by_o account_v the_o time_n of_o a_o synodical_a month_n to_o twenty_o nine_o day_n so_o many_o hour_n etc._n etc._n
allowance_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o other_o beast_n to_o he_o who_o be_v erect_v this_o seven_o head_n into_o its_o supremacy_n and_o dignity_n because_o he_o be_v so_o one_o with_o he_o as_o the_o false_a prophet_n and_o but_o for_o the_o time_n he_o be_v so_o erect_v he_o 3._o that_o the_o prophetical_a scheme_n may_v be_v understand_v concern_v this_o beast_n it_o be_v to_o be_v due_o state_v where_o the_o situation_n of_o each_o part_n of_o this_o multiplice_n scheme_n be_v to_o be_v there_o must_v be_v the_o trunk_n or_o body_n of_o this_o beast_n and_o that_o have_v its_o foot_n of_o many_o nation_n and_o people_n spread_v far_o and_o wide_a the_o people_n of_o the_o ten_o horn_n like_o the_o foot_n of_o a_o bear_n and_o by_o those_o many_o sort_n of_o people_n its_o body_n be_v various_o spot_v about_o like_o a_o leopard_n this_o be_v the_o populacy_n with_o their_o subordinate_a magistrate_n there_o be_v the_o seven_o head_n or_o supreme_a crown_a authority_n each_o have_v successive_a dignity_n and_o sovereignty_n as_o the_o roman_n have_v king_n consul_n decemvir_n tribune_n of_o the_o people_n perpetual_a dictator_n all_o fall_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o so_o they_o signify_v no_o far_o than_o the_o make_v a_o character_n of_o the_o monarchy_n intend_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v the_o emperor_n or_o the_o dragon_n in_o the_o language_n of_o prophecy_n and_o the_o six_o head_n and_o the_o beast_n the_o seven_o and_o last_o who_o mouth_n speak_v as_o the_o lion_n nabuchadnezzar_n act_v the_o body_n and_o foot_n to_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o leopard_n and_o bear_v by_o his_o idolatrous_a and_o fiery_a decree_n there_o be_v the_o ten_o crown_a horn_n who_o scite_fw-la be_v in_o this_o head_n absolute_a independent_a monarch_n and_o prince_n only_o as_o they_o agree_v to_o give_v their_o strength_n and_o power_n to_o the_o beast_n now_o all_o these_o have_v so_o close_a a_o union_n with_o the_o grand_a beast_n that_o the_o body_n be_v so_o his_o that_o he_o be_v the_o beast_n because_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n the_o ten_o horn_n be_v his_o while_n they_o be_v horn_n for_o their_o situation_n must_v be_v in_o the_o head_n the_o former_a head_n be_v he_o the_o five_o fall_v to_o make_v he_o a_o character_n the_o six_o the_o imperial_a dragon_n live_v in_o he_o be_v worship_v in_o he_o continues_z to_o the_o last_o in_o he_o viz._n the_o monarchickness_n the_o idolatry_n the_o enmity_n to_o christ_n kingdom_n especial_o even_o as_o he_o at_o the_o first_o be_v wound_v in_o he_o and_o the_o other_o beast_n be_v he_o negotiate_v his_o dignity_n and_o supremacy_n and_o at_o that_o complete_a subside_v into_o his_o false_a prophet_n the_o dragon_n the_o beast_n the_o false_a prophet_n send_v out_o each_o the_o spirit_n of_o devil_n and_o the_o false_a prophet_n take_v as_o inseparable_a one_o from_o the_o other_o with_o he_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o lake_n thus_o he_o be_v every_o way_n the_o grand_a apocalyptick_a beast_n have_v lay_v this_o foundation_n by_o way_n of_o premisal_n i_o come_v now_o to_o define_v this_o grand_a apocalyptick_a beast_n according_a to_o his_o certain_a essential_a invariable_a character_n most_o eminent_a in_o prophecy_n most_o conspicuous_a in_o history_n for_o i_o dare_v not_o adventure_v so_o great_a a_o weight_n on_o history_n without_o prophecy_n nor_o suspend_v it_o on_o my_o interpretation_n of_o prophecy_n without_o observe_v divine_a providence_n conduct_v the_o event_n at_o every_o swell_a period_n into_o most_o undoubted_a history_n when_o both_o meet_v to_o such_o perfection_n it_o be_v hard_o to_o doubt_v and_o even_o sullen_a obstinacy_n to_o deny_v the_o beast_n must_v be_v the_o apostle_n john_n great_a antichrist_n that_o 1._o charact._n 1._o be_v to_o come_v into_o the_o world_n agree_v with_o the_o false_a christ_n our_o lord_n prophesy_v of_o and_o the_o apostle_n john_n many_o antichrist_n 24._o 1_o john_n 4._o 2_o 3._o mat._n 24._o 24._o who_o will_v steal_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o messiah_n from_o he_o by_o pretend_v themselves_o to_o be_v christ_n and_o so_o deny_v that_o great_a article_n that_o christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n to_o which_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o father_n david_n be_v assure_v without_o end_n as_o be_v his_o root_n and_o offspring_n now_o this_o can_v be_v no_o way_n so_o effectual_o do_v as_o by_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o hold_v his_o kingdom_n in_o his_o right_n and_o as_o in_o honour_n of_o he_o and_o he_o that_o do_v that_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o opposite_a to_o christ_n and_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v disguise_v under_o servus_n servorum_fw-la dei_fw-la it_o will_v not_o excuse_v it_o now_o those_o open_a barefaced_a false_a christ_n the_o judgement_n of_o god_n immediate_o seize_v and_o give_v up_o to_o destruction_n but_o of_o such_o a_o antichrist_n as_o this_o christ_n have_v swear_v there_o shall_v be_v time_n time_n half_o a_o time_n for_o he_o and_o that_o christ_n kingdom_n shall_v not_o come_v or_o the_o wonder_n of_o it_o be_v accomplish_v till_o these_o be_v past_a and_o full_o pass_v and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n assure_v we_o before_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n can_v come_v the_o apostasy_n must_v bring_v forth_o such_o a_o antichrist_n who_o must_v therefore_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n viz._n the_o outward_a court_n and_o holy_a city_n or_o the_o profession_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o in_o christendom_n and_o there_o must_v exalt_v himself_o must_v usurp_v above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n viz._n christ_n even_o in_o his_o humane_a nature_n call_v and_o carry_v the_o name_n on_o his_o vesture_n and_o on_o his_o thigh_n but_o not_o write_v or_o set_v in_o public_a view_n till_o just_a before_o the_o beast_n ruin_n king_n of_o king_n lord_n of_o lord_n who_o god_n sanctify_v and_o send_v into_o the_o world_n as_o supreme_a prince_n and_o under_o he_o true_o christian_a supreme_n who_o be_v also_o call_v god_n john_n 10._o 35_o 36._o if_o then_o all_o history_n and_o all_o knowledge_n of_o time_n successive_o for_o several_a age_n declare_v such_o a_o pretend_a vicar_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v the_o most_o essential_a and_o original_a character_n of_o antichrist_n without_o search_v far_o into_o his_o quality_n and_o action_n for_o as_o whoever_o shall_v pretend_v to_o be_v depute_v to_o be_v a_o divine_a god_n be_v a_o idol_n so_o whoever_o pretend_v to_o be_v a_o spiritual_a plenipotentiary_n lord_n of_o lord_n and_o above_o prince_n as_o vicar_n of_o christ_n be_v antichrist_n for_o whoever_o say_v thus_o of_o himself_o say_v he_o be_v god_n for_o christ_n can_v have_v no_o vicar_n general_n on_o earth_n any_o more_o than_o god_n one_o universal_a deputy_n of_o his_o power_n claim_v divine_a honour_n such_o a_o antichrist_n must_v needs_o sit_v at_o rome_n for_o he_o must_v 2._o charact._n 2._o bear_v aloft_o the_o woman_n as_o a_o false_a church_n that_o be_v a_o wilderness_n to_o the_o true_a church_n when_o it_o be_v hide_v and_o yet_o feed_v with_o hide_a manna_n a_o howl_a wilderness_n where_o the_o lion_n the_o leopard_n and_o the_o bear_n inhabit_v in_o this_o wilderness_n john_n see_v sit_v on_o the_o beast_n this_o woman_n under_o the_o name_n of_o that_o city_n that_o in_o the_o appocalyptical_a time_n or_o when_o that_o prophecy_n be_v give_v sit_v upon_o many_o water_n or_o people_n and_o upon_o the_o seven_o mountain_n or_o the_o city_n so_o fame_v for_o be_v septi-collis_n or_o seven_o hill_v rome_n and_o which_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n as_o no_o other_o city_n at_o that_o time_n can_v be_v once_o suppose_v to_o do_v so_o character_v either_o by_o its_o hill_n or_o be_v drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n roma_fw-la jesus_n call_v on_o that_o account_n sancta_fw-la roma_fw-la as_o that_o city_n in_o all_o age_n have_v be_v a_o city_n who_o freedom_n be_v purchase_v at_o great_a rate_n in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o so_o fit_o say_v to_o sit_v on_o many_o water_n and_o to_o draw_v the_o confluence_n of_o people_n to_o it_o to_o receive_v law_n from_o it_o here_o therefore_o for_o the_o fulfil_a prophecy_n the_o beast_n must_v have_v his_o throne_n even_o as_o under_o pontius_n pilate_n the_o governor_n of_o judea_n constitute_v by_o the_o emperor_n of_o rome_n christ_n suffer_v and_o rose_n again_o into_o his_o kingdom_n according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o those_o king_n god_n will_v set_v up_o a_o everlasting_a kingdom_n the_o right_a of_o which_o then_o begin_v so_o that_o till_o constantine_n that_o roman_a empire_n be_v a_o dragon_n watch_v to_o devour_v the_o
the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n wonder_n who_o name_n be_v not_o write_v etc._n etc._n when_o they_o behold_v the_o beast_n that_o be_v etc._n etc._n this_o by_o compare_n with_o c._n 13._o must_v be_v when_o he_o come_v to_o be_v worship_v and_o that_o be_v not_o till_o he_o come_v to_o his_o number_n when_o the_o image_n have_v life_n give_v to_o it_o speak_v and_o cause_v and_o then_o it_o must_v be_v answer_v and_o in_o this_o very_a inscription_n the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n be_v much_o to_o be_v adore_v show_v so_o exact_o the_o gradual_a rise_n of_o the_o beast_n first_o out_o of_o the_o sea_n in_o his_o succession_n than_o out_o of_o the_o abyss_n or_o bottomless_a pit_n at_o his_o universality_n then_o at_o his_o number_n 666_o when_o he_o come_v to_o be_v worship_v as_o a_o head_n 4._o for_o in_o the_o first_o he_o be_v true_o say_v to_o be_v the_o beast_n that_o be_v that_o be_v subsist_v in_o the_o general_a bestianism_n of_o the_o roman_a monarchy_n that_o have_v be_v in_o six_o head_n be_v to_o survive_v forty_o two_o month_n under_o this_o seven_o head_n and_o so_o in_o the_o prophetic_a scheme_n have_v a_o be_v be_v not_o for_o the_o beast_n have_v at_o this_o time_n as_o little_a appearance_n as_o can_v possible_o consist_v with_o his_o succession_n succeed_v he_o do_v because_o that_o name_n of_o headship_n under_o which_o the_o beast_n be_v to_o live_v so_o long_o be_v leave_v at_o that_o time_n to_o he_o the_o supreme_a name_n alone_o in_o rome_n and_o so_o continue_v ever_o since_o for_o after_o the_o cessation_n of_o the_o christian_a emperor_n neither_o the_o king_n of_o the_o barbarous_a nation_n nor_o the_o greek_a emperor_n ravish_v the_o title_n of_o rome_n but_o content_v themselves_o with_o that_o of_o italy_n lombardy_n exarchy_n of_o ravenna_n in_o which_o the_o care_n of_o providence_n over_o prophecy_n be_v worthy_a admiration_n yet_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o chasm_n interreign_a or_o gap_n between_o the_o six_o head_n the_o pagan_a emperor_n wound_v by_o the_o christian_a emperor_n the_o seven_o king_n and_o no_o head_n and_o the_o beast_n the_o seven_o head_n but_o eight_o king_n it_o may_v well_o be_v say_v be_v not_o for_o this_o beastian_n head_n in_o prophetical_a scheme_n feel_v that_o wound_n both_o by_o sympathy_n as_o the_o beast_n that_o have_v no_o head_n in_o dignity_n be_v true_o mottoe_v be_v not_o as_o also_o upon_o himself_o as_o seven_o head_n the_o wound_n fall_v because_o he_o succeed_v not_o be_v fore_o let_v and_o when_o he_o do_v succeed_v he_o be_v but_o in_o infancy_n the_o king_n of_o italy_n and_o the_o grecian_a exarch_n hold_v he_o under_o that_o it_o may_v well_o be_v say_v of_o he_o be_v not_o but_o yet_o he_o so_o be_v that_o he_o go_v into_o perdition_n that_o be_v he_o be_v in_o his_o forty_o two_o month_n current_n which_o end_n in_o his_o perdition_n and_o of_o which_o the_o state_n under_o the_o christian_a emperor_n be_v a_o great_a pledge_n as_o of_o christ_n kingdom_n so_o of_o his_o perdition_n in_o the_o second_o place_n when_o he_o rise_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o have_v universal_a supremacy_n as_o head_n of_o rome_n he_o eminent_o carry_v the_o roman_a woman_n aloft_o in_o the_o same_o supremacy_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o former_a sense_n may_v be_v say_v be_v be_v not_o but_o shall_v ascend_v at_o his_o time_n 606_o out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o as_o a_o character_n most_o evident_a upon_o he_o as_o always_o inseparable_a from_o he_o go_v into_o perdition_n for_o out_o of_o the_o abyss_n he_o rise_v into_o it_o he_o be_v throw_v for_o ever_o this_o be_v after_o phocas_n give_v universality_n to_o he_o as_o be_v next_o to_o be_v discourse_v in_o the_o three_o when_o the_o dragon_n live_v in_o the_o beast_n who_o convert_v paganism_n into_o antichristianism_n exercise_v the_o same_o idolatrous_a universal_a power_n in_o the_o earth_n in_o a_o image_n at_o 666_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v they_o worship_v both_o the_o dragon_n and_o wonder_v after_o the_o beast_n admire_v the_o artifice_n when_o they_o see_v the_o beast_n that_o be_v viz._n in_o the_o draconick_a head_n be_v not_o the_o very_a same_o pagan_a idolatrous_a or_o imperial_a dragon_n and_o yet_o be_v be_v all._n that_o very_o same_o thing_n be_v a_o antichristian_a and_o pontifical_a image_n at_o 666._o his_o perdition_n be_v not_o herein_o name_v both_o for_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o type_n at_o his_o inauguration_n and_o because_o it_o be_v express_v before_o and_o after_o in_o this_o engrave_v upon_o he_o i_o leave_v therefore_o every_o one_o to_o judge_v how_o admirable_o prophecy_n and_o matter_n of_o fact_n agree_v in_o these_o inscription_n he_o must_v be_v a_o horn_n in_o the_o seed_n and_o bud_n at_o his_o very_a 5._o charact._n 5._o succession_n so_o design_v by_o providence_n so_o of_o right_n as_o a_o supreme_a though_o but_o in_o infancy_n and_o in_o a_o image_n yet_o be_v a_o small_a and_o feeble_a horn_n he_o can_v not_o get_v up_o but_o under_o the_o favour_n and_o shelter_n behind_o and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o other_o horn_n and_o then_o they_o become_v his_o horn_n in_o open_a view_n then_o he_o be_v one_o among_o ten_o into_o which_o the_o empire_n be_v various_o divide_v fall_v so_o as_o to_o make_v that_o number_n at_o any_o time_n after_o its_o division_n and_o ten_o as_o a_o complemental_a number_n be_v choose_v three_o be_v pull_v up_o by_o he_o by_o his_o influence_n and_o instance_n before_o he_o by_o the_o strength_n and_o martial_a prowess_n of_o other_o let_v history_n then_o declare_v what_o three_o eminent_a horn_n be_v pull_v up_o and_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o gothick_n horn_n pull_v up_o by_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n the_o lombard_n a_o second_o and_o the_o greek_a exarchy_n the_o three_o for_o this_o little_a horn_n by_o charles_n martill_a by_o pipin_n his_o son_n who_o be_v make_v king_n of_o france_n by_z him_z charles_n the_o great_a son_n and_o grandson_n to_o the_o two_o former_a invest_v with_o the_o titularity_n of_o western_a emperor_n for_o let_v history_n further_o declare_v for_o who_o sake_n they_o be_v pull_v up_o and_o who_o patrimony_n they_o become_v nor_o let_v it_o be_v any_o blemish_n in_o prophecy_n that_o daniel_n do_v not_o speak_v open_o of_o the_o headship_n of_o this_o little_a horn_n nor_o john_n of_o the_o hornship_n of_o this_o head_n for_o one_o type_n be_v peculiar_a to_o one_o prophet_n the_o other_o to_o the_o other_o and_o can_v not_o without_o manifest_a injury_n to_o either_o type_n be_v conjoin_v or_o confound_v but_o daniel_n subindicate_v his_o headship_n who_o he_o style_v a_o little_a 24._o dan._n 7._o 8._o dan_o 8._o 23._o dan._n 11._o 36._o c_o 7._o 24._o horn_n by_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o man_n by_o a_o countenance_n stout_a above_o his_o fellow_n by_o a_o mouth_n speak_v great_a thing_n by_o his_o understanding_n dark_a sentence_n by_o his_o be_v a_o king_n do_v after_o his_o own_o will_n in_o all_o which_o he_o be_v a_o horn_n diverse_a from_o all_o the_o rest_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o apocaliptick_a prophet_n do_v not_o dissemble_v his_o be_v a_o little_a horn_n while_o a_o head_n for_o the_o dragon_n give_v he_o his_o seat_n the_o ten_o king_n agree_v to_o give_v he_o their_o power_n and_o kingdom_n neither_o of_o which_o he_o can_v win_v by_o puissance_n and_o when_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v fulfil_v they_o resume_v all_o with_o ease_n and_o at_o pleasure_n for_o he_o prosper_v only_o by_o craft_n and_o serpentine_a 24._o dan._n 8._o 24._o subtlety_n inspire_v into_o he_o by_o satan_n the_o beast_n be_v always_o unite_a with_o false_a prophecy_n that_o he_o 6._o charct_n 6._o himself_o be_v the_o head_n and_o principal_a of_o it_o from_o the_o first_o and_o therein_o negotiate_v his_o own_o universal_a monarchy_n within_o his_o purple_n there_o lie_v a_o rough_a garment_n to_o deceive_v he_o be_v full_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n and_o so_o surprise_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o true_a prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n he_o be_v satan_n transform_v into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n a_o false_a apostle_n come_v with_o lie_v sign_n and_o wonder_n his_o eye_n be_v as_o a_o seer_n his_o mouth_n speak_v great_a thing_n his_o efficacy_n be_v by_o the_o deceivableness_n of_o vnrighteousness_n in_o they_o that_o perish_v his_o name_n son_n of_o perdition_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o traitor_n apostle_n judas_n who_o betray_v christ_n with_o the_o hail_n master_n and_o a_o kiss_n he_o blaspheme_v he_o be_v worship_v by_o those_o who_o be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o lamb_n book_n of_o life_n he_o be_v make_v supreme_a by_o call_v fire_n from_o heaven_n in_o false_a anathemaes_n he_o be_v inseparable_o unite_v
convey_v we_o upon_o this_o line_n this_o wonderful_a line_n we_o have_v discourse_v so_o long_o upon_o the_o line_n of_o the_o 1260_o day_n with_o which_o the_o forty_o two_o month_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v now_o combine_v prophecy_n will_n i_o say_v very_o speedy_o in_o the_o five_o trumpet_n convey_v and_o set_v we_o upon_o a_o new_a line_n of_o the_o mahometan_a hegira_n or_o computation_n of_o time_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v run_v upon_o it_o for_o the_o space_n of_o eight_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o year_n together_o with_o the_o 1260_o day_n and_o with_o the_o bestian_a line_n comprehend_v in_o short_a the_o most_o ecumenical_a and_o illustrious_a point_n of_o history_n at_o that_o time_n in_o the_o universe_n viz._n of_o the_o bestian_a and_o the_o mahometan_a grassation_n or_o invasion_n into_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o universal_a power_n and_o both_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o pseudo-prophetism_a the_o due_a observation_n of_o which_o will_v persuade_v we_o of_o the_o divineness_n of_o this_o prophecy_n and_o that_o we_o be_v upon_o the_o true_a explication_n of_o it_o as_o it_o be_v then_o between_o the_o end_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o and_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o five_o trumpet_n there_o be_v a_o loud_a voice_n as_o of_o a_o angel_n fly_v through_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o upper_a region_n like_o the_o voice_n of_o thunder_n reach_v down_o to_o the_o earth_n and_o say_v woe_n woe_n woe_n to_o the_o inhabiter_n of_o the_o earth_n because_o of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o angel_n that_o be_v yet_o to_o sound_v now_o it_o be_v wonderful_a if_o mere_o by_o the_o chance_n of_o imagination_n run_v such_o a_o path_n so_o great_a and_o remarkable_a configuration_n both_o of_o prophecy_n and_o history_n shall_v meet_v it_o so_o often_o just_o where_o it_o will_v choose_v and_o desire_v to_o be_v so_o meet_v for_o at_o this_o very_a time_n gregory_n call_v the_o great_a bishop_n of_o rome_n a_o personage_n of_o so_o great_a eminence_n for_o virtue_n learning_n and_o eloquence_n declare_v aloud_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n mauricius_n and_o to_o john_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n antioch_n so_o also_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexand._n and_o antioch_n that_o antichrist_n be_v near_o that_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n be_v a_o certain_a indication_n of_o he_o that_o it_o be_v pride_n to_o assume_v such_o a_o title_n it_o be_v like_o lucifer_n son_n of_o the_o morning_n ascend_v the_o height_n of_o the_o star_n set_v his_o throne_n above_o the_o other_o angel_n above_o the_o other_o star_n affect_v to_o be_v like_o the_o most_o high_a now_o see_v no_o such_o can_v be_v fix_v in_o the_o firmament_n or_o heaven_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o must_v needs_o fall_v how_o close_o then_o be_v this_o to_o the_o prophetic_a language_n i_o see_v a_o star_n fall_v from_o heaven_n or_o as_o christ_n in_o a_o like_a case_n speak_v i_o see_v satan_n fall_v as_o lightning_n from_o heaven_n as_o the_o dragon_n fall_v but_o find_v in_o the_o beast_n a_o kingdom_n on_o earth_n as_o before_o say_v just_o as_o when_o satan_n fall_v from_o heaven_n he_o have_v a_o kingdom_n assign_v he_o by_o the_o divine_a permission_n and_o decree_n viz._n god_n of_o this_o world_n ruler_n of_o the_o darkness_n of_o this_o world_n this_o star_n who_o be_v the_o son_n of_o perdition_n who_o come_v be_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o satan_n have_v the_o same_o in_o proportion_n the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n be_v give_v to_o he_o that_o be_v permit_v to_o he_o give_v judiciary_o into_o his_o hand_n by_o god_n wise_a and_o holy_a sufferance_n and_o over-rule_v of_o all_o thing_n to_o his_o glory_n this_o fall_v then_o of_o this_o star_n be_v like_o the_o angel_n leave_v their_o own_o habitation_n their_o first_o estate_n or_o true_a original_a principality_n 6._o judas_n v._n 6._o a_o fall_n not_o like_o that_o of_o the_o star_n the_o dragon_n sweep_v down_o with_o his_o tail_n or_o of_o the_o star_n wormwood_n a_o involuntary_a fall_n a_o fall_n from_o the_o heaven_n of_o a_o political_a order_n and_o supremacy_n to_o a_o low_a state_n without_o power_n but_o a_o fall_n of_o apostasy_n from_o his_o due_a station_n a_o planetary_a defection_n from_o his_o own_o orb_n 16._o v._o 16._o into_o a_o kingdom_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n to_o which_o darkness_n be_v reserve_v for_o ever_o and_o whenever_o the_o antichrist_n come_v the_o beast_n rise_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n or_o which_o be_v the_o same_o this_o star_n have_v fall_v there_o must_v be_v then_o woe_n woe_n woe_n for_o the_o vengeance_n of_o god_n at_o the_o same_o time_n make_v he_o way_n and_o pursue_v he_o every_o trumpet_n sound_v against_o he_o the_o first_o be_v to_o hurt_v only_o the_o 4._o revel_v 9_o 4._o man_n that_o be_v not_o seal_v of_o which_o he_o be_v the_o prince_n the_o second_o be_v upon_o those_o who_o be_v guilty_a of_o murder_n sorcery_n 20._o v._o 20._o theft_n idolatry_n the_o woman_n who_o the_o beast_n carry_v be_v guilty_a of_o all_o these_o be_v impenitent_a in_o they_o although_o 16._o c._n 11._o v._n 15._o compare_v with_o c._n 14._o c._n 15._o c._n 16._o god_n give_v her_o space_n to_o repent_v the_o three_o woe-trumpet_n bring_v with_o it_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o antichrist_n or_o the_o bestian_a kingdom_n so_o there_o be_v woe_n woe_n woe_n on_o the_o bestian_a earth_n whenever_o antichrist_n come_v immediate_o after_o this_o remonstrance_n of_o the_o bishop_n gregory_n the_o bishop_n boniface_n accept_v from_o the_o parricidick_a emperor_n phocas_n this_o universality_n so_o that_o in_o his_o sense_n antichrist_n then_o come_v and_o the_o first_o woe-trumpet_n according_a to_o prophecy_n be_v date_v from_o his_o fall_n what_o can_v be_v more_o wonderful_a as_o gregory_n be_v at_o all_o a_o good_a man_n his_o prediction_n must_v be_v own_a to_o a_o better_a spirit_n and_o to_o the_o knowledge_n divine_a prophecy_n give_v he_o and_o to_o the_o impression_n it_o have_v make_v upon_o he_o as_o he_o be_v himself_o part_n of_o that_o body_n upon_o which_o his_o own_o prediction_n run_v it_o be_v like_o nebuchadnezzar_n prophetic_a dream_n of_o 2._o dan._n 2._o the_o ruin_n of_o that_o image_n by_o the_o stone_n of_o which_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o gold_n or_o like_o the_o prophecy_n of_o caiaphas_n a_o very_a bad_a 51._o joh._n 11._o 51._o part_n of_o which_o himself_o be_v concern_v in_o however_o his_o eminent_a station_n give_v the_o rebound_v of_o his_o prediction_n as_o through_o the_o world_n and_o the_o time_n of_o rome_n lie_v so_o low_o be_v note_v most_o emphatical_o by_o prophecy_n viz._n rome_n without_o any_o eminent_a light_n of_o government_n and_o then_o follow_v such_o a_o immediate_a appearance_n of_o antichrist_n according_a to_o the_o signal_n give_v of_o he_o by_o that_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o according_a to_o prophecy_n the_o star_n fell._n this_o be_v in_o some_o sense_n i_o may_v say_v but_o too_o remarkable_a in_o so_o plain_o declare_v who_o be_v antichrist_n and_o that_o his_o kingdom_n hold_v by_o the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n it_o be_v true_a the_o beast_n have_v be_v in_o his_o forty_o two_o month_n above_o a_o hundred_o year_n yet_o as_o a_o tyrant_n prophetical_o declare_v to_o be_v a_o tyrant_n be_v not_o yet_o so_o in_o his_o infancy_n or_o under-state_n no_o more_o than_o hazael_n be_v a_o tyrant_n when_o elisha_n tell_v he_o what_o 11._o 1_o kin._n 8._o 11._o he_o as_o such_o a_o tyrant_n shall_v do_v no_o more_o be_v the_o beast_n such_o a_o beast_n while_o he_o be_v under_o the_o inscription_n be_v not_o so_o that_o though_o he_o be_v a_o beast_n by_o way_n of_o succession_n and_o some_o presagious_a action_n he_o may_v yet_o not_o be_v a_o fall_a star_n till_o he_o now_o fall_v and_o receive_v this_o key_n for_o the_o whole_a bestian_a body_n or_o succession_n be_v consider_v in_o the_o whole_a beast_n not_o in_o its_o several_a age_n nor_o in_o the_o single_a person_n make_v it_o some_o better_a some_o worse_o all_o that_o enter_v its_o composition_n be_v consider_v as_o one_o beast_n in_o the_o prophetic_a scheme_n in_o any_o age_n in_o any_o bestian_a quality_n more_o or_o less_o yea_o though_o so_o moderate_a as_o that_o they_o shall_v only_o bear_v up_o the_o title_n and_o maintain_v the_o succession_n and_o this_o remove_v all_o possible_a objection_n as_o thus_o be_v he_o that_o have_v be_v a_o beast_n so_o long_o a_o star_n yet_o to_o fall_v you_o see_v he_o may_v be_v so_o while_o he_o be_v the_o beast_n be_v not_o and_o yet_o not_o a_o fall_a star_n for_o this_o fall_n prepare_v his_o rise_n out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o so_o
have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n not_o judicial_o give_v but_o commit_v to_o he_o not_o to_o open_v the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o let_v out_o the_o smoke_n not_o to_o loose_v nor_o draw_v out_o at_o great_a liberty_n and_o by_o provoke_a god_n to_o give_v the_o malice_n of_o devil_n great_a scope_n by_o the_o angel_n of_o that_o pit_n rage_v like_o a_o roar_a lion_n in_o a_o hellish_a mahometanism_n but_o to_o lay_v hold_n on_o he_o to_o bind_v he_o to_o cast_v he_o into_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n to_o shut_v he_o up_o and_o to_o set_v a_o seal_n upon_o he_o that_o he_o may_v deceive_v the_o nation_n no_o more_o for_o the_o 1000_o year_n which_o very_a consideration_n of_o that_o so_o opposite_a vision_n do_v much_o inlighten_v this_o of_o the_o five_o trumpet_n we_o be_v now_o upon_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o consider_v now_o what_o the_o service_n of_o the_o two_o witness_n may_v at_o this_o time_n most_o agreeable_o with_o prophecy_n be_v and_o as_o so_o consider_v it_o i_o look_v upon_o this_o joint_n of_o time_n this_o proclamation_n of_o the_o three_o woe_n trumpet_n to_o be_v the_o very_a entrance_n of_o the_o witness_n in_o the_o second_o type_n of_o that_o eminent_a binary_a or_o pair_n of_o witness_n and_o prophet_n elijah_n and_o elisha_n the_o witness_n have_v now_o a_o long_a time_n as_o the_o son_n of_o oil_n empty_v their_o golden_a oil_n by_o way_n of_o preparatory_a furniture_n of_o those_o two_o golden_a candlestick_n the_o true_a church_n of_o pergamus_n and_o thyatyra_n that_o stand_v this_o whole_a line_n of_o time_n before_o the_o god_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o though_o we_o have_v not_o the_o clear_a and_o unmixed_a record_n of_o any_o such_o testimony_n for_o that_o be_v to_o lessen_v the_o prophecy_n beside_o that_o the_o indignation_n of_o the_o apostate_n church_n must_v needs_o have_v suppress_v they_o they_o must_v needs_o have_v suffer_v more_o so_o than_o under_o the_o injury_n of_o time_n but_o i_o say_v it_o be_v to_o lessen_v prophecy_n which_o say_v they_o be_v cover_v with_o sackcloth_n they_o be_v seal_v they_o be_v retire_v within_o the_o temple_n the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n through_o the_o scatter_n of_o its_o seed_n it_o be_v not_o then_o possible_a according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n there_o shall_v be_v pure_a liquid_a remain_n of_o their_o testimony_n but_o now_o the_o antichristian_o like_o sanballat_n and_o tobiah_n and_o other_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o jew_n disturb_v their_o service_n and_o in_o building_n with_o they_o hinder_v the_o operation_n and_o infuse_v their_o venom_n in_o some_o part_n into_o the_o write_n and_o discourse_n of_o person_n of_o a_o much_o more_o excellent_a temper_n in_o the_o main_a now_o the_o witness_n therefore_o as_o we_o may_v in_o part_n see_v by_o gregory_n praise_v before_o pass_v into_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o elijah_n and_o elisha_n they_o begin_v now_o to_o have_v fire_n proceed_v out_o of_o their_o mouth_n to_o devour_v their_o adversary_n they_o begin_v to_o declare_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o idolatry_n and_o antichristian_a pride_n and_o blasphemy_n and_o this_o enter_v as_o fire_n into_o the_o conscience_n of_o their_o enemy_n that_o in_o this_o manner_n they_o be_v kill_v as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o sword_n of_o christ_n mouth_n which_o he_o threaten_v to_o the_o balamites_n in_o the_o church_n of_o pergamus_n and_o herein_o they_o imitate_v the_o zeal_n of_o moses_n and_o phincas_fw-la against_o the_o spiritual_a fornication_n and_o nicolaitanism_n of_o that_o time_n and_o also_o prepare_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n in_o thyatyra_n with_o a_o holy_a zeal_n against_o the_o jezebelism_n and_o idolatry_n and_o fornication_n of_o that_o time_n also_o when_o the_o apostasy_n be_v increase_v but_o how_o can_v we_o hope_v for_o much_o of_o monument_n hereof_o the_o prophecy_n of_o gregory_n be_v more_o than_o we_o can_v expect_v and_o be_v it_o not_o that_o he_o serve_v the_o apostasy_n to_o many_o other_o great_a purpose_n we_o have_v not_o have_v so_o much_o of_o he_o but_o god_n overrule_v so_o far_o now_o the_o witness_n be_v come_v into_o the_o close_a time_n of_o be_v seal_v and_o therefore_o we_o have_v the_o mention_n of_o it_o revive_v within_o the_o five_o trumpet_n they_o be_v say_v with_o hide_a manna_n they_o be_v hardly_o know_v one_o to_o another_o at_o the_o very_a time_n elijah_n know_v not_o of_o the_o seven_o thousand_o knee_n that_o have_v not_o bow_v to_o baal_n nor_o their_o mouth_n kiss_v he_o but_o think_v himself_o alone_o how_o much_o less_o than_o can_v we_o now_o know_v they_o and_o which_o be_v very_o characteristical_a of_o this_o period_n of_o the_o witness_n prophecy_n and_o testimony_n they_o have_v power_n to_o shut_v heaven_n that_o it_o rain_v not_o in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o prophecy_n so_o that_o there_o arise_v a_o famine_n not_o of_o bread_n but_o of_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o this_o endure_v for_o the_o intimate_a time_n of_o which_o we_o be_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o next_o period_n of_o the_o witness_n and_o the_o remark_n of_o shut_v heaven_n for_o three_o year_n and_o six_o month_n will_v be_v of_o great_a conduct_n to_o we_o sect_n x._o wherein_o be_v undertake_v to_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o mahometan_a saracen_n be_v the_o locust_n design_v in_o the_o five_o apocalyptick_a trumpet_n and_o that_o the_o five_o month_n give_v to_o they_o comprehend_v four_o hundred-thirty_a five_o year_n from_o the_o mahometan_a hegira_n at_o 622_o and_o so_o reach_v to_o 1057._o upon_o rev._n c._n 9_o v._n 1._o etc._n etc._n i_o pass_v on_o from_o this_o joint_n of_o time_n engrave_v with_o the_o real_a and_o substantial_a character_n of_o the_o angel_n proclaim_v the_o three_o woe_n the_o star_n fall_v the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n give_v to_o he_o all_o which_o i_o have_v explain_v i_o come_v now_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o descent_n of_o this_o star_n to_o the_o open_v the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o of_o that_o smoke_n that_o issue_v out_o upon_o it_o and_o the_o unexpected_a event_n of_o locust_n come_v out_o of_o the_o smoke_n which_o produce_v a_o new_a line_n of_o time_n beginning_n at_o 622_o and_o not_o end_v till_o 1453_o but_o divide_v by_o prophecy_n into_o two_o part_n the_o five_o month_n and_o five_o month_n of_o the_o locust_n and_o the_o hour_n day_n month_n and_o year_n of_o the_o army_n of_o horseman_n between_o which_o will_v come_v in_o the_o account_n of_o intimate_a time_n and_o so_o we_o will_v discourse_v each_o in_o their_o order_n antichrist_n then_o appear_v in_o the_o star_n fall_v to_o the_o earth_n to_o shine_v there_o as_o a_o universal_a pastor_n of_o which_o sort_n the_o firmament_n of_o heaven_n know_v none_o nor_o can_v bear_v any_o such_o so_o he_o must_v needs_o fall_v to_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o beast_n here_o transmigrate_v into_o by_o the_o dragon_n and_o beginning_n to_o exalt_v the_o woman_n by_o carry_v his_o universality_n in_o a_o image_n inscribe_v with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o have_v receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n in_o place_n of_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n he_o immediate_o proceed_v to_o open_v it_o and_o let_v we_o out_o error_n falsehood_n blasphemy_n the_o doctrine_n of_o balam_n nicolaitanism_n antichristianism_n spiritual_a pride_n and_o tyranny_n like_o the_o smoke_n or_o perpetual_a vapour_n of_o the_o abyss_n and_o its_o open_a mouth_n that_o darken_v the_o whole_a air_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o profession_n and_o in_o this_o by_o degree_n he_o ascend_v high_a and_o high_o till_o he_o come_v to_o his_o number_n 666._o but_o satan_n above_o he_o in_o this_o bottomless_a pit_n turn_v every_o way_n and_o move_v more_o way_n than_o one_o to_o advance_v his_o kingdom_n especial_o overrule_v and_o govern_v by_o god_n in_o fulfil_v the_o course_n of_o his_o judgement_n so_o impregnate_v this_o smoke_n in_o that_o time_n of_o spiritual_a drought_n and_o of_o the_o heaven_n shut_v as_o brass_n and_o the_o earth_n as_o iron_n a_o time_n specific_a for_o these_o locust_n as_o drought_n be_v for_o the_o natural_a one_o that_o unaware_o to_o this_o fall_a star_n there_o come_v a_o swarm_n of_o locust_n out_o of_o the_o smoke_n and_o they_o prove_v arm_v crown_a locust_n dreadful_o annoy_v and_o torment_v the_o antichristian_a world_n viz._n by_o the_o mahometan_a saracen_n have_v thus_o far_o then_o prepare_v to_o it_o i_o come_v to_o the_o main_a position_n of_o this_o section_n the_o proof_n of_o which_o i_o be_o to_o undertake_v that_o these_o locust_n be_v the_o mahometan_a saracen_n who_o five_o and_o five_o month_n measure_n from_o 622_o to_o 1057_o the_o first_o argument_n i_o derive_v from_o the_o style_n in_o which_o
this_o argu._n 1_o prophecy_n speak_v of_o their_o king_n he_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n who_o name_n be_v abaddon_n in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n and_o in_o the_o greek_a apollion_n now_o by_o this_o description_n it_o be_v most_o evident_a some_o potentacy_n be_v describe_v that_o have_v its_o place_n in_o the_o world_n and_o who_o very_a constitution_n shall_v of_o all_o that_o have_v ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o satan_n himself_o who_o be_v the_o only_a proper_a angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n have_v and_o will_v choose_v to_o appear_v in_o be_v the_o immediate_a intelligence_n of_o and_o the_o spirit_n that_o act_v it_o above_o any_o potentacy_n that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o world_n to_o this_o day_n but_o it_o be_v in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o be_v consider_v that_o as_o the_o locust_n and_o horseman_n we_o shall_v find_v plain_o unite_v in_o their_o empoisoned_a tail_n of_o serpent_n so_o they_o be_v in_o their_o king_n and_o his_o title_n be_v therefore_o set_v in_o the_o joint_n between_o the_o five_o and_o six_o trumpet_n to_o communicate_v with_o both_o the_o potentacy_n then_o must_v be_v a_o potentacy_n on_o earth_n and_o it_o must_v seat_v itself_o in_o the_o hebrew_n and_o grecian_a acropole_n or_o chief_a city_n as_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a tongue_n import_v like_v as_o the_o inscription_n upon_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v providential_o write_v in_o latin_a greek_a and_o hebrew_n to_o show_v the_o chief_a residency_n of_o his_o kingdom_n in_o those_o so_o know_a part_n of_o the_o world_n i_o appeal_v then_o to_o all_o christian_n whether_o since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n or_o indeed_o since_o the_o creation_n there_o have_v be_v a_o empire_n in_o the_o world_n that_o may_v be_v comprise_v in_o one_o word_n viz._n mahometan_n that_o for_o the_o foul_a fordo_v base_a imposture_n of_o its_o religion_n and_o koran_n the_o ignorance_n and_o bruitishness_n of_o its_o very_a profession_n the_o cruelty_n and_o ravage_v it_o have_v make_v upon_o humane_a nature_n to_o the_o utmost_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n abaddon_n or_o apollion_n or_o wherein_o satan_n have_v most_o immediate_o appear_v as_o the_o enemy_n and_o destroyer_n of_o mankind_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v under_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n as_o its_o king_n with_o such_o propriety_n as_o the_o mahometan_a abate_v the_o confession_n of_o one_o god_n and_o the_o abhorrence_n of_o image-idolatry_n there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o utmost_a effect_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n have_v not_o be_v see_v and_o even_o that_o good_a in_o that_o confession_n of_o one_o god_n be_v improve_v by_o his_o malice_n against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a god_n in_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n and_o so_o may_v well_o be_v couch_v in_o the_o very_a word_n abaddon_n and_o apollion_n as_o the_o every_o way_n most_o incomparable_a dr._n more_o have_v with_o high_a ingeny_n and_o learning_n observe_v the_o fall_a star_n that_o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n who_o be_v sathanick_n enough_o in_o who_o the_o dragon_n also_o inhabit_v who_o have_v be_v bloody_a to_o great_a extremity_n yet_o be_v even_o essential_o enough_o distinguish_v from_o he_o he_o be_v a_o star_n fall_v from_o another_o sphere_n descend_v with_o the_o key_n and_o ascend_v and_o let_v out_o the_o smoke_n but_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n he_o profess_v still_o and_o maintain_v however_o debauch_v by_o antichristianism_n not_o a_o native_a of_o the_o abyss_n as_o this_o angel_n be_v he_o hold_v the_o scripture_n while_o he_o let_v out_o the_o smoke_n also_o but_o this_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n have_v no_o more_o of_o god_n but_o what_o hell_n have_v that_o believe_v one_o god_n tremble_v in_o the_o acknowledge_v of_o he_o all_o else_o be_v perfect_a hell_n the_o time_n most_o eminent_o and_o illustrious_o agree_v for_o after_o the_o roman_a western_a state_n be_v in_o justinian_o time_n so_o whole_o unenlightn_v after_o the_o christian_a three_o woe_n proclaim_v by_o pope_n gregory_n the_o first_o after_o universality_n give_v by_o phocas_n and_o receive_v by_o boniface_n and_o that_o there_o be_v some_o time_n for_o open_v the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o let_v out_o the_o smoke_n out_o of_o that_o smoke_n come_v mahomet_n the_o false_a prophet_n and_o king_n of_o the_o locust_n inhabit_v and_o possess_v by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n of_o which_o his_o epileptic_a fit_n be_v a_o emblem_n if_o not_o the_o effect_n of_o a_o very_a possession_n according_a to_o the_o eminent_o judicious_a mede_n upon_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o possess_v in_o the_o gospel_n he_o come_v i_o say_v a_o false_a prophet_n in_o armour_n lead_v these_o men-locust_n who_o have_v a_o king_n over_o they_o for_o solomon_n observe_v 27._o proverb_n 30._o 27._o those_o natural_a infect_v have_v no_o king_n that_o we_o may_v thereby_o know_v these_o be_v men-locust_n this_o mahomet_n upon_o his_o persecution_n for_o his_o hellish_a imposture_n make_v a_o flight_n from_o mecha_n and_o set_v up_o for_o prophet_n and_o king_n that_o flight_n become_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n a_o famous_a hegira_n a_o era_n or_o date_n of_o time_n at_o anno_fw-la dom._n 622._o from_o thence_o this_o prophecy_n draw_v a_o line_n to_o the_o take_v constantinople_n 1453._o of_o just_a 830_o year_n of_o which_o allow_v five_a month_n and_o five_o month_n to_o the_o locust_n and_o their_o action_n and_o a_o interspersed_a five_o month_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o locust_n before_o between_z and_o after_o the_o heat_n and_o height_n of_o their_o action_n their_o share_n will_v be_v to_o 1057_o that_o be_v four_o hundred_o thirty_o five_o year_n when_o the_o turkish_a sultany_n enter_v into_o a_o remarkable_a appearance_n in_o the_o world_n in_o tangrolipix_n as_o then_o prepare_v for_o a_o hour_n a_o day_n a_o month_n and_o a_o year_n which_o be_v most_o exact_a as_o to_o point_v of_o time_n as_o will_v appear_v in_o that_o part_n to_o 1453_o when_o constantinople_n become_v the_o ottoman_a port._n the_o symbol_n or_o parable_n of_o the_o prophecy_n and_o the_o parallel_n of_o history_n be_v most_o exact_a the_o locust_n come_v out_o of_o the_o drought_n and_o smoak_n of_o the_o apostasy_n thus_o mahometanism_n spring_v as_o be_v observe_v out_o of_o the_o idleness_n stupidity_n and_o superstition_n of_o monkery_n for_o sergius_n the_o monk_n incubate_v the_o alcoran_n their_o power_n as_o the_o scorpion_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v power_n their_o have_a sting_n in_o their_o tail_n and_o their_o hurt_v with_o they_o be_v all_o significant_a of_o their_o false_a serpentine_a religion_n and_o their_o false_a prophetism_n which_o scripture_n compare_v to_o a_o tail_n now_o the_o propagation_n of_o this_o their_o venom_n be_v the_o great_a pretence_n for_o their_o cruelty_n and_o this_o envenom_a syrma_fw-la of_o a_o devilish_a religion_n strike_v under_o and_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o which_o their_o enslave_v be_v worse_a than_o death_n itself_o their_o hurt_a neither_o the_o grass_n of_o the_o earth_n nor_o any_o green_a thing_n nor_o any_o tree_n speak_v the_o universal_a blast_n of_o the_o apostasy_n and_o its_o drought_n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o appearance_n to_o be_v hurt_v the_o witness_n the_o worshipper_n the_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v all_o close_a the_o woman_n in_o the_o wilderness_n where_o the_o serpent_n can_v not_o find_v she_o as_o before_z explain_v no_o green_a olive_n tree_n appear_v though_o still_o secret_o they_o empty_v their_o oil_n but_o in_o the_o time_n of_o these_o locust_n elijah_n drought_n have_v wither_v all_o appearance_n but_o what_o be_v secret_o in_o the_o temple_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n psal_n 52._o 8._o the_o emblem_n of_o their_o warlikeness_n be_v very_o admirable_a their_o likeness_n be_v as_o horse_n prepare_v to_o the_o battle_n on_o their_o head_n be_v the_o glister_n of_o their_o helmet_n like_o crown_n of_o gold_n their_o face_n as_o of_o man_n their_o arabian_a lock_n like_o the_o hair_n of_o woman_n their_o tooth_n as_o of_o lion_n their_o breastplate_n of_o iron_n the_o noise_n of_o their_o wing_n be_v as_o the_o sound_n of_o chariot_n and_o horse_n run_v to_o the_o battle_n and_o a_o warlike_a king_n over_o they_o all_o these_o be_v demonstrative_a emblem_n of_o arm_a man_n the_o description_n of_o locust_n joel_n 2._o be_v so_o like_o this_o of_o the_o apocal._n 9_o that_o i_o can_v think_v but_o that_o beside_o the_o literal_a sense_n it_o have_v a_o prospect_n upon_o they_o and_o these_o as_o they_o come_v out_o of_o the_o drought_n describe_v c._n 1._o of_o that_o prophecy_n viz._n the_o universal_a
wither_n of_o all_o the_o greenness_n of_o religion_n for_o so_o scripture_n prophecy_n both_o design_n beforehand_o for_o and_o after_o derive_v from_o itself_o the_o distribution_n of_o their_o dreadful_a effect_n to_o a_o five_o month_n of_o torment_n upon_o man_n like_o the_o stroke_n of_o a_o scorpion_n while_o it_o be_v a_o vexation_n to_o understand_v the_o report_n we_o suppose_v according_a to_o history_n be_v their_o first_o invade_v the_o world_n in_o general_n and_o hover_v over_o the_o apostate_n kingdom_n the_o swiftness_n of_o their_o success_n be_v so_o prodigious_a that_o it_o can_v not_o but_o be_v think_v that_o the_o lord_n utter_v his_o voice_n before_o his_o army_n and_o that_o as_o his_o camp_n be_v very_o great_a so_o he_o be_v strong_a that_o execute_v his_o word_n that_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v very_o terrible_a and_o none_o can_v abide_v it_o before_o their_o face_n all_o people_n be_v much_o pain_v and_o all_o face_n gather_v blackness_n the_o continual_a tiding_n of_o their_o victory_n and_o success_n be_v to_o be_v continual_o torment_v as_o with_o job_n messenger_n or_o with_o the_o stroke_n of_o a_o scorpion_n a_o not_o be_v kill_v but_o a_o live_n in_o pain_n but_o when_o this_o army_n draw_v near_o into_o italy_n and_o even_o to_o rome_n itself_o in_o the_o second_o five_o month_n when_o it_o enter_v the_o very_a gate_n of_o that_o great_a city_n they_o run_v up_o the_o wall_n and_o enter_v in_o at_o the_o window_n to_o pillage_n and_o plunder_v and_o be_v also_o perpetual_o strike_v with_o the_o tail_n of_o not_o only_o their_o false_a religion_n but_o in_o contempt_n and_o scorn_n of_o the_o antichristian_a idolatry_n and_o image-worship_n it_o be_v worse_a than_o a_o speedy_a death_n or_o a_o total_a conquest_n the_o prophetical_a death_n here_o intend_v especial_o when_o it_o come_v to_o cruel_a slavery_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n then_o man_n seek_v for_o death_n that_o be_v a_o quiet_a state_n although_o of_o be_v conquer_v and_o in_o subjection_n and_o can_v not_o find_v it_o it_o flee_v from_o they_o for_o god_n have_v determine_v they_o this_o linger_a torment_n and_o not_o a_o speedy_a death_n or_o conquest_n over_o they_o and_o even_o these_o locust_n can_v do_v no_o more_o than_o what_o be_v command_v they_o and_o give_v to_o they_o now_o their_o power_n the_o five_o second_o month_n be_v more_o than_o the_o first_o it_o be_v not_o only_o to_o torment_v with_o their_o terror_n and_o report_n but_o to_o hurt_v with_o a_o real_a presence_n but_o it_o be_v only_o to_o hurt_v and_o not_o to_o kill_v as_o the_o turkish_a cavalry_n be_v to_o do_v at_o constantinople_n so_o they_o can_v do_v no_o more_o than_o hurt_n they_o can_v not_o kill_v the_o bestian_a rome_n and_o empire_n be_v to_o survive_v they_o thus_o they_o have_v five_o month_n and_o five_o month_n of_o action_n eminent_a grand_a action_n but_o see_v they_o have_v the_o space_n of_o five_o month_n more_o in_o their_o fourhundr_v and_o thirty_o year_n they_o must_v be_v suppose_v to_o come_v out_o of_o a_o first_o formation_n and_o rude_a preparation_n or_o to_o be_v at_o a_o distance_n from_o the_o effect_n of_o torment_n and_o hurt_v upon_o the_o unseal_v anticbristian_a especial_o western_a state_n and_o at_o their_o latter_a end_n of_o power_n a_o winterly_a torpor_n and_o deadness_n seize_v they_o and_o the_o turkish_a power_n drive_v they_o into_o a_o desolate_a land_n and_o their_o stink_n as_o of_o a_o army_n of_o dead_a serpent_n come_v up_o that_o yet_o in_o their_o time_n have_v do_v great_a thing_n and_o so_o be_v their_o memory_n at_o this_o day_n and_o thus_o history_n and_o prophecy_n will_v agree_v in_o the_o account_n of_o their_o time_n at_o least_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o bestian_a kingdom_n beside_o supposable_a interspersion_n or_o truce_n of_o their_o impression_n upon_o the_o earth_n of_o the_o fall_v star_n or_o antichrist_n the_o just_a and_o natural_a ensue_a woe_n upon_o this_o first_o as_o close_o arg._n 4_o as_o the_o two_o bestian_a time_n one_o to_o another_o and_o yet_o distinguish_v too_o under_o the_o very_a same_o mahometan_a king_n or_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o in_o the_o entail_v of_o the_o same_o serpentine_a religion_n be_v a_o very_a persuasive_a argument_n of_o the_o due_a explication_n of_o these_o thing_n in_o prophecy_n who_o situation_n connexion_n and_o sequence_n one_o upon_o another_o even_o as_o the_o hour_n day_n month_n and_o year_n upon_o their_o five_o month_n five_o month_n and_o their_o vacation_n or_o non-term_n of_o action_n be_v close_o and_o inseparable_a but_o this_o will_v rise_v into_o a_o far_a observation_n upon_o that_o part_n of_o the_o line_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n as_o a_o strong_a support_n it_o help_v to_o sustain_v the_o point_n we_o be_v upon_o the_o very_a great_a fitness_n of_o these_o locust_n under_o their_o king_n mahomet_n be_v every_o way_n most_o admirable_a to_o be_v a_o scourge_n and_o arg._n 5_o woe_n upon_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n and_o their_o month_n or_o half-moon_n to_o be_v a_o portentous_a paraselene_n or_o another_o moon_n upon_o they_o they_o be_v a_o mock-state_n every_o way_n to_o they_o by_o the_o severe_a vengeance_n of_o god_n a_o antichrist_n to_o antichrist_n come_v by_o sergius_n the_o monk_n out_o of_o their_o very_a smoke_n let_v out_o by_o the_o key-bearing_a fall_v star_n their_o king_n a_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n rival_v the_o star_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o his_o ten_o horn_n be_v mate_v by_o the_o monarchy_n of_o this_o king_n and_o one_o universality_n by_o the_o other_o the_o pseudo_fw-la or_o false_a prophetism_n of_o the_o one_o by_o that_o of_o the_o other_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o one_o by_o those_o of_o the_o other_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o cruelty_n and_o bloodiness_n of_o the_o one_o by_o those_o of_o the_o other_o both_o be_v sharer_n in_o the_o roman_a empire_n each_o have_v his_o rome_n one_o old_a rome_n the_o other_o new_a rome_n each_o of_o which_o imperial_a city_n be_v in_o this_o prophetic_a emblem_n three_o of_o men._n both_o aspire_v to_o the_o possession_n of_o jerusalem_n as_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o universal_a monarchy_n and_o dominion_n but_o both_o mistake_v the_o jerusalem_n in_o bondage_n for_o that_o which_o come_v down_o from_o above_o at_o which_o both_o will_v be_v vanish_v both_o be_v draconick_a and_o oppose_v and_o stave_v off_o the_o true_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n both_o oppress_v the_o witness_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n but_o the_o beast_n by_o single_a war_n with_o they_o the_o king_n of_o the_o locust_n in_o the_o general_n and_o mistake_v the_o false_a church_n for_o the_o true_a and_o its_o earthly_a glory_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o can_v hurt_v the_o true_a glory_n both_o last_o the_o one_o as_o a_o bestian_a kingdom_n the_o other_o as_o a_o woe_n till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 1260_o day_n both_o be_v to_o be_v utter_o destroy_v before_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o latter_a be_v a_o judgement_n and_o a_o woe-trumpet_n on_o the_o former_a both_o as_o it_o be_v christian_a in_o pretence_n and_o profession_n to_o which_o mahomet_n be_v a_o profess_a foe_n and_o as_o it_o be_v antichristian_a idolatrous_a and_o superstitious_a for_o so_o it_o be_v scorn_v and_o abuse_v and_o deride_v as_o well_o as_o persecute_v by_o mahometanism_n now_o to_o balance_v these_o two_o antichristianism_n one_o with_o another_o and_o the_o interest_n of_o satan_n in_o they_o it_o be_v thus_o to_o be_v settle_v in_o one_o satan_n be_v as_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n fall_v from_o heaven_n and_o make_v use_n of_o the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n in_o the_o other_o he_o be_v plain_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o act_n as_o the_o destroyer_n now_o the_o first_o must_v be_v necessary_o the_o most_o hateful_a to_o god_n because_o it_o be_v the_o great_a blasphemy_n its_o moon_n eclipse_n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n most_o direct_o and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o draconick_a nodi_fw-la surprise_v it_o when_o it_o be_v to_o appear_v at_o the_o cast_n down_o satan_n from_o heaven_n and_o the_o manly_a birth_n catch_v up_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n upon_o which_o antichristianism_n as_o the_o finess_n of_o sathanism_n mahometanism_n be_v provide_v as_o a_o scourge_n and_o woe_n of_o the_o course_v and_o thick_a of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o the_o black_a appearance_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o though_o mahometanism_n shall_v be_v final_o destroy_v and_o send_v back_o to_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n yet_o antichristianism_n shall_v receive_v great_a
although_o they_o be_v as_o overflowing_n of_o the_o prophecy_n beyond_o its_o conduct_n of_o thing_n within_o the_o trumpet_n yet_o it_o be_v most_o demonstrable_a they_o must_v all_o return_n within_o the_o trumpet_n and_o time_n at_o large_a begin_v with_o the_o trumpet_n and_o intimate_a time_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o pillar_n of_o time_n erect_v within_o the_o five_o trumpet_n for_o see_v the_o woman_n and_o the_o witness_n 1260_o day_n must_v needs_o be_v equal_a in_o their_o beginning_n and_o end_v and_o the_o beast_n intimate_v time_n must_v be_v place_v where_o the_o witness_n vanquishment_n and_o death_n be_v and_o that_o these_o must_v be_v within_o the_o trumpet_n nay_o in_o that_o all_o time_n must_v be_v before_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n and_o end_n at_o it_o all_o time_n therefore_o from_o thence_o in_o account_n recoil_v backward_o so_o as_o to_o find_v room_n for_o itself_o even_o to_o the_o first_o of_o the_o 1260_o day_n within_o the_o first_o trumpet_n which_o beginning_n at_o 437_o end_v with_o 42_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o period_n at_o 1697._o all_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v evince_v all_o along_o and_o i_o do_v more_o than_o hope_v have_v be_v so_o evince_v i_o have_v already_o prevent_v myself_o in_o the_o remark_n of_o this_o whole_a line_n by_o place_v they_o early_o in_o the_o first_o view_v of_o it_o and_o therefore_o now_o make_v only_o these_o short_a one_o as_o a_o conclusion_n we_o may_v be_v heal_v of_o any_o dangerous_a wonder_n that_o a_o remark_n 1_o apostasy_n from_o christian_a religion_n so_o foul_a and_o thick_a as_o to_o need_v no_o confutation_n of_o its_o figment_n and_o fable_n the_o very_a title_n his_o holiness_n vicar_n of_o christ_n do_v so_o loud_o proclaim_v antichrist_n that_o such_o a_o one_o have_v endure_v so_o long_a a_o time_n have_v captivate_v the_o wise_a the_o learned_a the_o politic_a the_o noble_a the_o royal_a the_o imperial_a we_o see_v in_o this_o prophecy_n it_o be_v to_o do_v so_o and_o by_o this_o oath_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v and_o be_v to_o last_o time_n time_n half_a time_n even_o till_o the_o end_n of_o it_o it_o be_v to_o do_v so_o ere_o its_o decem_n principality_n it_o be_v ten_o horn_a kingdom_n fall_n and_o although_o it_o begin_v by_o degree_n yet_o it_o have_v then_o most_o sudden_a downfall_n one_o at_o the_o reformation_n as_o but_o in_o preparation_n and_o beginning_n the_o other_o at_o the_o end_n of_o that_o half_a time_n then_o begin_v viz._n at_o 1697_o when_o his_o fall_n shall_v be_v exceed_o great_a see_v it_o be_v most_o impossible_a intimate_v time_n shall_v return_v remark_n 2_o whatever_a suffering_n there_o may_v be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o thyatyra_n how_o great_a how_o dismal_a soever_o yet_o there_o can_v be_v a_o slay_v of_o the_o witness_n any_o more_o for_o christ_n have_v swear_v with_o the_o rainbow_n 1._o cap._n 10._o 1._o on_o his_o head_n it_o shall_v be_v as_o the_o water_n of_o noah_n to_o he_o 9_o isa_n 54._o 9_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o such_o return_n for_o ever_o nor_o can_v i_o apprehend_v the_o church_n of_o sardis_n can_v in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o reform_a nation_n 9_o rev._n 3._o 3._o v._o 9_o lose_v its_o state_n by_o a_o return_n of_o that_o apostasy_n its_o only_a danger_n be_v its_o shame_n that_o without_o repentance_n will_v befall_v it_o at_o the_o more_o glorious_a appearance_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o especial_o those_o part_n of_o it_o that_o have_v relapse_v to_o a_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n shall_v with_o double_a shame_n be_v force_v to_o come_v and_o worship_n at_o philadelphia_n foot_n and_o to_o know_v christ_n have_v love_v it_o who_o endeavour_v to_o shut_v its_o door_n see_v we_o be_v compass_v about_o with_o so_o great_a a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n remark_n 3_o let_v we_o with_o great_a confidence_n wait_v hope_v expect_v pray_v for_o the_o great_a glory_n that_o be_v to_o be_v bring_v unto_o we_o at_o that_o great_a appearance_n that_o will_v be_v make_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o half_a time_n or_o half_a day_n or_o at_o the_o last_o of_o the_o last_o 180_o of_o 1260_o day_n viz._n at_o 1697_o so_o often_o memorialize_v although_o but_o in_o preparation_n to_o that_o kingdom_n itself_o 75_o year_n after_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v not_o live_v to_o it_o in_o this_o world_n yet_o we_o shall_v lose_v nothing_o by_o it_o for_o in_o heaven_n and_o with_o the_o lamb_n on_o mount_n zion_n we_o shall_v with_o the_o other_o witness_n rejoice_v in_o 1._o rev._n 14._o 1._o so_o happy_a a_o change_n as_o will_v even_o then_o be_v make_v and_o so_o rejoice_v for_o ever_o each_o in_o our_o lot_n of_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n or_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o point_n of_o this_o line_n of_o time_n or_o its_o period_n sect_n fourteen_o wherein_o be_v contain_v a_o brief_a disquisition_n upon_o the_o seven_o voice_n as_o they_o run_v along_o apoc._n ch_n 14._o the_o last_o line_n of_o time_n upon_o the_o grand_a line_n of_o daniel_n 2300_o eu._n mor._n stretch_v out_o itself_o beyond_o the_o so_o often_o repeat_v prophetical_a line_n we_o have_v be_v upon_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v most_o just_o and_o according_a to_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o line_n to_o be_v join_v with_o it_o because_o the_o holy_a spirit_n have_v in_o daniel_n so_o join_v to_o 1260_o 30_o more_o make_v 1290_o and_o then_o 45_o make_v 1335_o as_o have_v be_v so_o often_o observe_v so_o that_o from_o hence_o however_o join_v rise_v a_o distinct_a line_n of_o 75_o year_n consist_v of_o its_o lesser_a distinction_n 30_o and_o 45._o and_o with_o great_a wisdom_n and_o design_n they_o be_v undoubted_o thus_o join_v and_o yet_o distinguish_v for_o hereby_o be_v show_v 1._o that_o it_o be_v the_o same_o principal_a line_n of_o 2300_o eu._n mor._n thus_o protend_v 2._o that_o the_o management_n of_o divine_a power_n as_o to_o the_o divine_a kingdom_n be_v of_o a_o distinct_a nature_n from_o what_o they_o be_v any_o part_n even_o the_o last_o and_o best_a part_n that_o be_v the_o half-time_n of_o the_o 1260_o day_n or_o since_o the_o reformation_n and_o yet_o that_o there_o be_v a_o agreement_n too_o so_o that_o the_o kingdom_n be_v distinct_o advance_v in_o the_o first_o 30_o above_o the_o state_n of_o it_o along_o the_o half-time_n and_o still_o far_o and_o high_o advance_v in_o the_o last_o distinction_n or_o the_o forty_o five_o and_o yet_o that_o the_o kingdom_n do_v not_o appear_v in_o glory_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 1335_o all_o which_o appear_v very_o plain_o both_o in_o daniel_n and_o this_o apocalyptick_a prophecy_n where_o see_v the_o voice_n and_o the_o vial_n come_v after_o the_o 1260_o day_n we_o may_v conclude_v by_o the_o union_n and_o by_o the_o distinction_n together_o that_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o six_o trumpet_n adhere_v close_o to_o the_o seven_o and_o then_o by_o the_o voice_n first_o and_o the_o vial_n after_o they_o both_o of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n follow_v so_o close_o one_o upon_o another_o and_o by_o the_o bless_a state_n come_v upon_o all_o we_o may_v be_v most_o assure_v the_o voice_n and_o the_o vial_n answer_v to_o the_o thirty_o and_o the_o forty_o five_o year_n of_o surplusage_n to_o the_o 1260_o day_n so_o distinguish_v and_o so_o conjoin_v now_o that_o these_o voice_n and_o vial_n of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n be_v yet_o to_o come_v and_o to_o come_v in_o the_o order_n lay_v down_o and_o within_o the_o time_n lay_v down_o these_o six_o thing_n may_v indubitable_o convince_v we_o 1._o we_o may_v be_v full_o assure_v nothing_o so_o great_a as_o the_o seven_o thunder_n can_v be_v hear_v before_o the_o reformation_n so_o high_a so_o loud_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n so_o they_o must_v be_v with_o the_o reformation_n beginning_n 2._o there_o be_v most_o apparent_o a_o space_n allow_v for_o the_o thunder_n remain_v seal_v after_o their_o voice_n utter_v which_o space_n have_v so_o great_a reason_n as_o have_v be_v give_v to_o be_v rate_v at_o a_o half-time_n or_o 180_o year_n and_o so_o can_v be_v run_v out_o yet_o since_o the_o reformation_n 3._o nothing_o so_o eminent_a since_o the_o reformation_n as_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o ten_o of_o the_o great_a city_n or_o the_o turkish_a woe_n cease_v whatever_o hope_v now_o appear_v nor_o of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n so_o close_o lynck_v with_o both_o have_v yet_o be_v see_v 4._o the_o oath_n of_o christ_n that_o time_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o can_v possible_o allow_v such_o a_o space_n of_o time_n or_o delay_v as_o the_o half-time_n after_o time_n time_n half-time_n within_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n or_o indeed_o any_o time_n at_o all_o wherein_o every_o thing_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o
his_o mighty_a one_o according_a to_o rev._n 19_o come_v down_o and_o the_o whole_a air_n be_v full_a of_o divine_a judgement_n so_o that_o this_o battle_n just_a before_o the_o kingdom_n 17._o v._o 17._o of_o christ_n be_v with_o burn_v and_o fuel_n of_o fire_n and_o not_o garment_n roll_v in_o blood_n of_o which_o all_o the_o immediate_a judgement_n from_o heaven_n as_o on_o midian_a as_o on_o the_o assyrian_n esa_n 9_o 5._o be_v type_n which_o last_o be_v join_v to_o a_o clear_a prophecy_n of_o this_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o christ._n i_o can_v give_v no_o fit_a remark_n upon_o so_o unfathomable_a a_o course_n remark_n remark_n of_o judgement_n than_o the_o record_v that_o song_n of_o moses_n the_o servant_n of_o god_n at_o the_o final_a overthrow_n of_o the_o egyptian_o in_o the_o red_a sea_n and_o of_o the_o lamb_n c._n 15._o 9_o great_a and_o marvellous_a be_v thy_o work_n lord_n god_n almighty_a just_a and_o true_a be_v thy_o way_n oh_o king_n of_o saint_n who_o shall_v not_o fear_v thou_o oh_o lord_n and_o glorify_v thy_o name_n for_o thou_o only_o be_v holy_a and_o all_o nation_n shall_v come_v and_o worship_v before_o thou_o for_o thy_o judgement_n be_v make_v manifest_a and_o this_o course_n of_o judgement_n comprehend_v all_o the_o dead_a both_o small_a and_o great_a to_o that_o very_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v do_v and_o at_o last_o to_o these_o dead_a at_o the_o seven_o vial_n be_v gather_v all_o who_o name_n be_v not_o find_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o be_v cast_v with_o death_n itself_o into_o the_o lake_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n which_o be_v the_o second_o death_n sect_n xvi_o wherein_o be_v give_v in_o a_o most_o brief_a account_n the_o state_n of_o the_o thousand_o year_n both_o as_o to_o time_n and_o excellency_n on_o c._n 20._o the_o time_n of_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o be_v the_o sabbath_n of_o time_n when_o all_o antisabbatical_a time_n shall_v be_v at_o a_o end_n and_o no_o more_o be_v a_o thousand_o year_n now_o it_o may_v be_v a_o great_a doubt_n how_o this_o time_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v whether_o literal_o or_o mystical_o if_o literal_o how_o then_o will_v it_o agree_v with_o the_o whole_a frame_n of_o the_o prophecy_n which_o have_v very_o little_a that_o be_v not_o mystical_a and_o of_o a_o typical_a signification_n and_o most_o particular_o all_o the_o line_n of_o time_n but_o if_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v mystical_a either_o they_o shall_v express_v no_o definite_a time_n or_o they_o shall_v if_o mystical_o multiply_v set_v the_o state_n of_o eternity_n at_o incomputable_a distance_n yet_o from_o the_o last_o time_n and_o end_n of_o the_o world_n we_o be_v now_o subsist_v upon_o contrary_a to_o all_o the_o reason_n and_o faith_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o whole_a analogy_n of_o the_o scripture_n now_o that_o which_o i_o will_v reconcile_v the_o thought_n of_o all_o the_o serious_a considerer_n of_o prophecy_n in_o this_o matter_n by_o be_v that_o here_o the_o literal_a and_o the_o mystical_a sense_n conspire_v and_o close_o embrace_v one_o another_o the_o literal_a 1000_o year_n comprise_v high_a mystery_n in_o it_o for_o beside_o that_o in_o round_a number_n as_o we_o compute_v time_n it_o come_v in_o as_o the_o sabbatical_a thousand_o for_o which_o i_o perceive_v there_o be_v a_o general_a favour_n of_o all_o christian_n if_o not_o jew_n that_o have_v any_o estimation_n of_o mystic_a type_n of_o prophecy_n beside_o this_o and_o that_o the_o millenary_a number_n have_v great_a reputation_n in_o pythagorick_a mystic_a number_n as_o a_o cubical_a number_n rise_v from_o 10_o and_o fill_v up_o the_o perfection_n of_o number_n even_o as_o the_o millenary_a state_n be_v the_o perfect_a state_n of_o conformity_n to_o the_o law_n of_o creation_n give_v by_o god_n in_o the_o 10_o word_n we_o call_v the_o decalogue_n in_o which_o sabbatism_n have_v so_o great_a place_n and_o reason_n it_o be_v also_o the_o time_n wherein_o satan_n be_v bind_v chain_v and_o seal_v up_o the_o sanctuary_n be_v cleanse_v in_o the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o it_o be_v do_v in_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n beside_o all_o this_o it_o be_v the_o great_a emblem_n god_n have_v choose_v to_o represent_v his_o own_o and_o his_o servant_n bless_a eternity_n in_o this_o thousand_o year_n be_v as_o one_o day_n to_o he_o to_o represent_v he_o and_o his_o sect_n viii_o wherein_o the_o 42_o month_n be_v measure_v by_o the_o exact_a rule_n of_o prophecy_n and_o find_v to_o begin_v at_o the_o cessation_n of_o the_o christian_a western_a empire_n and_o to_o end_v whenever_o the_o 1260_o day_n end_n the_o date_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n immediate_o ensue_v and_o by_o compare_n with_o the_o 1260_o day_n at_o 1697._o page_n 90._o sect_n ix_o in_o which_o the_o time_n from_o the_o 42_o month_n beginning_n be_v set_v out_o till_o 622_o or_o the_o mahometan_a hegira_n by_o rome_n dark_a state_n in_o the_o four_o trumpet_n by_o the_o angel_n proclaim_v the_o three_o woe_n trumpet_n by_o the_o beast_n become_v a_o fall_v star_n at_o 606_o and_o the_o key_n of_o the_o abyss_n give_v he_o viz._n in_o the_o universal_a pastorship_n by_o phocas_n and_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o other_o beast_n to_o he_o herein_o and_o the_o state_n of_o the_o witness_n be_v also_o declare_v revel_v c._n 8._o v._n 12._o etc._n etc._n c._n 9_o v._n 1._o etc._n etc._n page_n 114._o sect_n x._o wherein_o be_v undertake_v to_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o mahometan_a saracen_n be_v the_o locust_n design_v in_o the_o five_o apocalyptical_a trumpet_n and_o that_o the_o 25_o month_n give_v to_o they_o comprehend_v 435_o year_n from_o the_o mahometan_a hegire_v at_o 622_o and_o so_o reach_v ●o_o 1057._o upon_o rev._n c._n 9_o v._n 1._o etc._n etc._n page_n 124._o sect_n xi_o of_o the_o number_n 666_o show_v the_o certainty_n it_o give_v to_o the_o whole_a line_n of_o time_n both_z as_o to_o the_o nature_n and_o time_n of_o the_o beast_n upon_o a_o true_a and_o right_a explanation_n of_o it_o rev._n 13._o v._n 15_o 16_o 17_o 18._o page_n 132._o sect_n xii_o in_o which_o be_v give_v a_o explication_n of_o the_o woe_n of_o the_o six_o trumpet_n especial_o to_o the_o take_n of_o constantinople_n and_o by_o proportion_n to_o the_o reformation_n and_o to_o the_o end_n of_o that_o woe_n and_o a_o adjustment_n of_o the_o hour_n day_n month_n and_o year_n to_o the_o whole_a time_n upon_o revel_v 9_o 12_o 13_o 14_o etc._n etc._n page_n 149._o sect_n xiii_o this_o section_n enter_v into_o the_o half-time_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o by_o the_o agreement_n of_o prophecy_n with_o the_o event_n demonstrate_v the_o beginning_n and_o end_n of_o that_o time_n on_o rev._n c._n 10._o page_n 155._o sect_n fourteen_o wherein_o be_v contain_v a_o brief_a disquisition_n upon_o the_o seven_o voice_n as_o they_o run_v along_o apoc._n c._n 14._o page_n 177._o sect_n xv._o wherein_o be_v give_v a_o very_a brief_n display_v on_o the_o vial_n page_n 185._o sect_n xvi_o wherein_o be_v give_v in_o most_o brief_a account_n the_o time_n of_o the_o 1000_o year_n both_o as_o to_o time_n and_o excellency_n page_n 189._o finis_fw-la
conversion_n to_o christianity_n though_o so_o great_a as_o to_o be_v a_o very_a strong_a argument_n of_o its_o truth_n be_v small_a in_o comparison_n of_o what_o this_o shall_v be_v for_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n begin_v early_o to_o work_v ephesus_n the_o type_n of_o the_o apostolical_a church_n leave_v its_o first_o love_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o apostle_n go_v off_o the_o world_n and_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n under_o the_o type_n of_o smyrna_n yet_o a_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n a_o authoritative_a ecclesiastic_a apostasy_n then_o overshade_v it_o till_o in_o the_o time_n figure_v by_o pergamus_n all_o be_v cover_v with_o the_o throne_n of_o satan_n a_o supremacy_n of_o apostasy_n and_o so_o thing_n go_v on_o and_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o recover_v in_o the_o best_a christian_a church_n but_o they_o shall_v be_v after_o the_o space_n of_o ten_o prophetical_a day_n that_o be_v year_n to_o that_o degree_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n shall_v be_v proclaim_v to_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n and_o so_o thing_n shall_v go_v on_o amain_o to_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o god_n have_v speak_v by_o his_o prophet_n since_o the_o world_n begin_v the_o lord_n will_v hasten_v all_o this_o in_o his_o own_o time_n and_o if_o it_o be_v wonderful_a in_o our_o eye_n shall_v it_o be_v therefore_o wonderful_a in_o god_n the_o witness_n shall_v then_o put_v off_o their_o sackcloth_n the_o everlasting_a gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v to_o every_o people_n and_o language_n the_o monarchy_n of_o christ_n jesus_n shall_v be_v a_o universal_a monarchy_n and_o the_o tenfold_o principality_n the_o ten_o king_n shall_v fall_v perfect_o off_o from_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o city_n that_o be_v bear_v up_o on_o high_a by_o it_o that_o have_v so_o long_o reign_v over_o the_o nation_n and_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v fall_v stay_v than_o you_o atheist_n and_o despiser_n of_o all_o religion_n and_o assuage_v the_o high_a atheistical_a humour_n see_v whether_o god_n have_v not_o call_v the_o end_n and_o declare_v it_o from_o the_o beginning_n and_o declare_v all_o along_o the_o great_a thing_n to_o come_v that_o you_o and_o all_o may_v know_v that_o he_o be_v god_n have_v so_o much_o patience_n as_o to_o see_v what_o these_o ten_o year_n will_v produce_v at_o their_o end_n but_o if_o you_o will_v not_o be_v persuade_v take_v your_o fill_n of_o atheism_n and_o your_o farewell_n also_o for_o the_o very_a air_n you_o breath_n in_o will_v be_v too_o bright_a and_o hot_a for_o atheism_n to_o live_v any_o long_o in_o let_v we_o consider_v at_o what_o door_n this_o fatal_a apostasy_n remark_n 2_o enter_v even_o at_o a_o departure_n from_o the_o apostolical_a twelve_o and_o so_o grow_v up_o to_o its_o number_n 666_o let_v we_o i_o say_v fear_v the_o least_o remove_n in_o doctrine_n worship_n and_o practice_n from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n or_o from_o christ_n the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n we_o need_v not_o so_o much_o mind_n combat_v party_n in_o religion_n by_o name_n hateful_a or_o reproachful_a to_o they_o much_o less_o those_o little_a snatch_n at_o they_o by_o trifle_a reflection_n upon_o they_o let_v we_o centre_n ourselves_o upon_o truth_n itself_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o grow_v in_o grace_n and_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o will_v secure_v we_o from_o this_o error_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o from_o fall_v from_o our_o own_o steadfastness_n this_o will_v cut_v off_o offence_n from_o all_o but_o those_o who_o be_v resolve_v to_o take_v offence_n this_o will_v preserve_v we_o in_o due_a regard_n to_o authority_n if_o we_o dissent_v from_o it_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o yet_o we_o shall_v preserve_v our_o religion_n while_o we_o keep_v close_o to_o those_o image_n of_o thing_n scripture_n have_v give_v we_o and_o observe_v those_o note_n of_o time_n it_o have_v fit_v to_o they_o and_o suffer_v history_n which_o be_v every_o man_n privilege_n to_o read_v to_o hear_v or_o to_o know_v even_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n to_o declare_v what_o fall_v out_o and_o this_o we_o can_v be_v deny_v since_o god_n have_v furnish_v we_o in_o all_o thing_n and_o command_v we_o to_o search_v his_o word_n and_o to_o hear_v and_o read_v the_o word_n of_o his_o prophecy_n and_o count_v the_o number_n he_o have_v give_v with_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n and_o his_o minister_n be_v to_o expound_v to_o we_o and_o then_o we_o be_v to_o search_v and_o try_v whether_o those_o thing_n be_v so_o or_o not_o and_o in_o all_o thing_n receive_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o know_v and_o all_o know_v it_o be_v more_o reasonable_a to_o obey_v god_n than_o men._n these_o be_v two_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o happiness_n and_o welfare_n of_o man_n consist_v for_o this_o world_n and_o for_o that_o to_o come_v both_o which_o he_o have_v make_v as_o certain_a and_o evident_a to_o we_o as_o the_o light_n one_o and_o the_o first_o and_o principal_a be_v true_a religion_n fix_v in_o his_o word_n with_o the_o present_a consent_n of_o natural_a conscience_n and_o the_o awe_v of_o that_o even_o whether_o we_o will_v or_o no._n if_o we_o will_v but_o rest_v in_o the_o clear_a plain_a and_o undoubted_a truth_n of_o it_o and_o not_o be_v hasty_a of_o remove_v from_o they_o till_o we_o have_v full_a evidence_n from_o they_o to_o conduct_v we_o far_o into_o divine_a knowledge_n without_o suffer_v our_o own_o fancy_n to_o mislead_v we_o or_o our_o credulity_n and_o sudden_a belief_n of_o other_o to_o hurry_v we_o according_a to_o their_o imposition_n the_o second_o be_v loyalty_n or_o subjection_n to_o the_o sovereign_a power_n set_v over_o we_o by_o god_n and_o what_o that_o be_v we_o may_v easy_o know_v for_o the_o sword_n of_o justice_n be_v supreme_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o it_o and_o the_o government_n of_o that_o world_n in_o which_o we_o live_v that_o the_o disorder_n of_o mankind_n may_v not_o swallow_v up_o itself_o depend_v upon_o it_o it_o carry_v before_o it_o a_o terror_n to_o evil_a work_n and_o a_o praise_n to_o they_o that_o do_v well_o upon_o which_o account_n we_o must_v be_v subject_a not_o only_o for_o wrath_n but_o for_o conscience_n sake_n and_o when_o this_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o prince_n who_o ancestor_n have_v be_v prince_n throughout_o many_o age_n when_o the_o succession_n be_v clear_a and_o lineal_a we_o can_v have_v no_o great_a assurance_n the_o power_n that_o be_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n and_o such_o bless_a be_v god_n be_v the_o case_n of_o our_o nation_n that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o possible_a scruple_n now_o our_o subjection_n be_v clear_a what_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v even_o in_o all_o thing_n but_o our_o religion_n whether_o reveal_v or_o natural_a for_o that_o be_v god_n and_o to_o be_v render_v to_o he_o only_o all_o thing_n else_o be_v caesar_n a_o christian_a as_o a_o christian_a can_v have_v no_o scruple_n or_o doubt_n in_o any_o thing_n else_o whatever_o it_o be_v this_o he_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n submit_v it_o be_v to_o impeach_v sovereignty_n in_o its_o high_a orb_n even_o as_o it_o be_v to_o obey_v a_o subordinate_a magistrate_n send_v by_o the_o king_n against_o the_o king_n and_o his_o supremacy_n but_o in_o all_o thing_n else_o he_o need_v as_o a_o christian_a ask_v no_o question_n for_o conscience_n sake_n what_o man_n may_v as_o man_n as_o the_o subject_n of_o such_o law_n such_o establishment_n as_o every_o nation_n have_v peculiar_a to_o itself_o insist_v upon_o i_o leave_v to_o those_o law_n i_o know_v as_o christian_n the_o render_v our_o life_n our_o estate_n if_o call_v for_o by_o god_n and_o the_o edict_n of_o prince_n can_v hurt_v our_o conscience_n but_o render_v our_o religion_n to_o any_o but_o god_n and_o his_o word_n will_n so_o these_o two_o thing_n religion_n and_o loyalty_n can_v never_o clash_v can_v never_o interfere_v for_o to_o deny_v the_o surrender_n of_o our_o religion_n can_v never_o hurt_v our_o loyalty_n for_o to_o be_v religious_a according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o and_o natural_a conscience_n guide_v by_o that_o be_v the_o high_a loyalty_n this_o be_v all_o the_o loyalty_n man_n can_v require_v to_o render_v all_o thing_n else_o without_o resistance_n and_o to_o love_n honour_n pray_v for_o the_o prince_n that_o require_v all_o our_o loss_n god_n will_v recompense_v in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a so_o a_o christian_n have_v no_o need_n to_o be_v disloyal_a if_o he_o understand_v his_o religion_n aright_o it_o be_v not_o our_o loyalty_n to_o our_o prince_n to_o be_v of_o our_o prince_n religion_n though_o it_o be_v right_a
manly_a birth_n that_o have_v right_o to_o rule_v all_o nation_n now_o with_o this_o dragon_n the_o beast_n be_v to_o be_v unite_v to_o receive_v his_o throne_n power_n and_o great_a authority_n from_o he_o and_o in_o he_o the_o dragon_n must_v live_v and_o be_v worship_v therefore_o he_o that_o be_v the_o beast_n must_v be_v roman_a and_o sit_v at_o rome_n from_o which_o the_o christian_a emperor_n by_o divine_a conduct_n recede_v that_o this_o character_n of_o the_o beast_n may_v be_v leave_v free_a to_o the_o beast_n alone_o and_o under_o he_o it_o must_v be_v antichristian_a until_o the_o very_a glorious_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o then_o be_v to_o be_v burn_v when_o the_o beast_n be_v take_v and_o cast_v into_o the_o lake_n that_o it_o may_v answer_v the_o whole_a ichnography_n or_o description_n rev._n c._n 17._o c._n 18._o now_o that_o we_o may_v thorough_o understand_v this_o character_n and_o the_o certainty_n of_o it_o by_o the_o woman_n that_o sit_v on_o the_o beast_n must_v be_v apprehend_v rome_n as_o a_o city_n and_o a_o church_n a_o false_a and_o antichristian_a church_n fix_v in_o and_o make_v inseparable_a from_o this_o city_n no_o other_o can_v answer_v the_o prophecy_n so_o that_o the_o other_o beast_n call_v the_o false_a prophet_n can_v be_v conceive_v by_o it_o for_o whereas_o this_o city_n must_v be_v burn_v as_o from_o heaven_n the_o false_a prophet_n be_v take_v with_o the_o beast_n and_o cast_v into_o the_o lake_n that_o it_o must_v be_v the_o very_a city_n be_v plain_a by_o the_o whole_a prophetical_a type_n this_o have_v the_o seven_o king_n unite_v with_o the_o whole_a empire_n that_o by_o their_o residence_n in_o it_o do_v also_o carry_v it_o and_o bear_v it_o aloft_o this_o sit_v on_o many_o water_n this_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n this_o have_v its_o merchant_n and_o its_o various_a merchandise_n its_o pomp_n and_o its_o pleasure_n this_o be_v the_o eternal_a rome_n that_o after_o its_o be_v throw_v a_o burn_a mountain_n into_o the_o sea_n at_o above_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n old_a be_v preserve_v and_o rescue_v and_o have_v stand_v twelve_o hundred_o year_n more_o so_o great_a as_o it_o be_v at_o this_o day_n and_o shall_v not_o be_v total_o destroy_v till_o the_o appearance_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v epoch_n of_o restitution_n be_v in_o sacred_a prophecy_n as_o chronicular_a and_o monumental_a as_o be_v its_o building_n or_o vrbs_fw-la condita_fw-la but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o city_n so_o be_v it_o a_o apostatise_v church_n fix_v to_o that_o city_n for_o on_o its_o forehead_n be_v write_v mystery_n the_o sense_n of_o which_o be_v church_n in_o a_o city_n opposite_a to_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o seven_o church_n but_o agreeable_a to_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n it_o be_v the_o great_a whore_n and_o mother_n of_o harlot_n with_o which_o the_o king_n and_o people_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v commit_v fornication_n and_o this_o we_o know_v be_v the_o constant_a description_n of_o a_o idolatrous_a church_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o of_o aholiab_n and_o aholibah_n ezek._n 23._o it_o be_v babylon_n the_o great_a in_o this_o mystery_n and_o it_o be_v spiritual_o call_v sodom_n the_o impure_a city_n in_o its_o spiritual_a fornication_n as_o well_o as_o corporeal_a nicolaitanism_n and_o egypt_n the_o enslave_v cruel_a city_n hold_v the_o israel_n of_o god_n in_o bondage_n it_o be_v spiritual_o that_o apostate_n jerusalem_n that_o be_v in_o bondage_n with_o its_o child_n where_o our_o lord_n be_v crucify_a it_o cover_v the_o true_a church_n call_v for_o its_o sake_n pergamus_n and_o the_o high-raised_a throne_n of_o satan_n so_o it_o be_v thyatyra_n the_o spiritual_a jezebel_n daughter_n of_o eth._n baal_n king_n of_o the_o sidonian_n daughter_n of_o a_o ethnic_a idolatrous_a city_n who_o merchandise_n be_v the_o instrument_n of_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n sum_v up_o in_o the_o body_n of_o man_n not_o only_o attend_v its_o state_n as_o the_o scarlet_a fine_a linen_n gold_n silver_n ivory_n precious_a wood_n do_v but_o its_o blind_a dark_a religion_n require_v servile_a stupid_a brute_n for_o man_n and_o soul_n of_o man_n perish_v for_o ever_o in_o its_o service_n against_o light_n and_o conviction_n of_o truth_n and_o defend_v it_o with_o a_o violate_a distort_a reason_n abuse_v part_n and_o learning_n revel_v 18._o 13._o and_o this_o rome_n must_v be_v both_o the_o city_n and_o church_n for_o here_o and_o in_o it_o the_o primacy_n of_o st._n peter_n reside_v as_o bishop_n lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o its_o so_o long_a greatness_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_n constantinople_n be_v but_o a_o eminence_n as_o small_a as_o the_o fame_n of_o it_o seven_o hill_n but_o as_o little_a rise_n compare_v with_o this_o eternal_a church_n of_o eternal_a rome_n the_o ottoman_a port_n have_v swallow_v that_o flame_n from_o heaven_n rest_n upon_o this_o so_o that_o the_o smoke_n of_o its_o burn_a shall_v ascend_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o as_o both_o city_n and_o church_n for_o so_o prophecy_n have_v read_v its_o destiny_n and_o it_o can_v be_v reverse_v strong_a be_v the_o lord_n that_o judge_v it_o this_o city_n than_o be_v to_o be_v a_o pyramid_n pile_n of_o smoke_n and_o flame_n ascend_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o a_o eternal_a city_n of_o burn_a as_o the_o city_n sodom_n a_o lake_n of_o brimstone_n settle_v in_o its_o very_a room_n place_n and_o situation_n a_o jericho_n so_o curse_v as_o to_o be_v no_o more_o build_v and_o a_o apostate_n church_n suffer_v as_o spiritual_a sodom_n the_o vengeance_n of_o eternal_a fire_n he_o the_o beast_n must_v carry_v universal_a monarchy_n as_o the_o emperor_n 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o of_o rome_n do_v over_o as_o it_o be_v the_o habitable_a world_n for_o so_o his_o union_n with_o the_o dragon_n import_v and_o yet_o that_o this_o may_v not_o be_v mistake_v it_o must_v be_v in_o a_o image_n a_o real_a martial_a natural_a cesareate_n be_v not_o in_o the_o prophetical_a portraiture_n of_o antichrist_n but_o in_o the_o image_n of_o a_o pontificate_n or_o a_o vicarship_n to_o christ_n on_o earth_n even_o as_o the_o caesar_n carry_v a_o pontificate_n enchase_v into_o their_o imperialism_n or_o cesareate_v so_o the_o beast_n bear_v a_o cesareate_a or_o imperial_a power_n enchase_v into_o his_o pontificate_n the_o other_o beast_n therefore_o minister_a to_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o first_o beast_n viz._n the_o roman_a empire_n as_o to_o be_v under_o the_o seven_o head_n but_o not_o yet_o erect_v into_o public_a dignity_n and_o supremacy_n find_v no_o way_n to_o do_v it_o but_o by_o say_v to_o the_o antichristian_a earth_n and_o its_o inhabitant_n that_o they_o shall_v make_v a_o etc._n revel_v 13._o v._n 14_o 15._o etc._n etc._n image_n to_o the_o first_o beast_n that_o be_v wound_v with_o a_o sword_n and_o do_v live_v be_v wound_v in_o the_o six_o head_n live_v in_o the_o seven_o but_o be_v not_o yet_o in_o dignity_n to_o be_v worship_v to_o this_o entire_a beast_n as_o in_o the_o seven_o head_n be_v to_o be_v make_v a_o image_n of_o idolatry_n and_o a_o image_n of_o imperiality_n a_o universal_a power_n under_o the_o image_n of_o a_o in_o ordine_fw-la ad_fw-la spiritualia_fw-la resident_a in_o a_o pontifical_a supremacy_n and_o infallibility_n and_o when_o this_o image_n have_v by_o the_o continue_a service_n of_o that_o other_o beast_n life_n give_v to_o it_o to_o speak_v and_o to_o cause_n that_o all_o that_o will_v not_o worship_v this_o image_n 4_o c._n 14._o v._n 9_o c._n 15._o v._n 2._o c._n 16._o v._n 2._o c._n 19_o v._n 20._o c._n 20._o v._n 4_o shall_v be_v kill_v and_o that_o all_o shall_v receive_v a_o mark_n etc._n etc._n here_o arise_v the_o universal_a monarchy_n in_o a_o image_n and_o from_o this_o time_n the_o prophecy_n join_v continual_o the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n together_o the_o beast_n must_v answer_v that_o prophetic_a motto_n or_o inscription_n 5._o carat_n 5._o upon_o he_o thrice_o give_v and_o point_v at_o three_o several_a season_n 1._o the_o beast_n that_o be_v be_v not_o he_o be_v the_o eight_o and_o be_v of_o the_o 11._o ch._n 17._o 11._o seven_o and_o go_v into_o perdition_n this_o be_v determine_v to_o the_o point_n of_o time_n proper_a to_o his_o succession_n and_o then_o he_o must_v answer_v it_o 2._o the_o beast_n that_o be_v be_v not_o shall_v ascend_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a 8._o v._o 8._o pit_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v determine_v to_o the_o time_n in_o which_o the_o beast_n first_o bear_v the_o woman_n for_o the_o beast_n that_o thou_o see_v viz._n with_o the_o woman_n sit_v upon_o he_o be_v etc._n etc._n then_o therefore_o he_o must_v answer_v that_o inscription_n 3._o the_o beast_n that_o be_v be_v not_o yet_o be_v this_o be_v determine_v to_o 8._o v._o 8._o the_o time_n when_o